#and i hope u enjoy the absolute man
Explore tagged Tumblr posts
Text
@sapphicseasapphire your mer time... he grabbed me by the throat...
#the legend of zelda#chain as cryptids au#cryptid time#mermay#i added a few minor alterations for my own mer hcs#and then jewelry because i could#and then dramatic shonen hair because i am simply a sucker for long hair#anyway#sapphire i adore ur art#and i hope u enjoy the absolute man
229 notes
¡
View notes
Text
pairing:Â hoshina soushirou x gn!reader (no prns)
summary:Â he still dreams of you and wishes for another chance to make you his, some lines are inspired by hakujitsu by king gnu
warnings:Â reader is rather lively/bubbly,
notes: TYSM FOR 100 !!!, a/n (yapping) in tags
wc:Â 1800
Hoshina Soushirou still dreamt of you. Every once in a while, youâd come to visit him in his sleep and it would make him believe that a miracle had occurred, that he had another chance. Every time, he would tell himself that he would never let this go, that he would give it his absolute all this time.
Yet, every time, he would wake up from this dream.
And every time, he would feel his heart drop at the realization of that. He was disappointed, and he knew, but there was no reason to be. It wasn't like anything had happened between the two of you. He liked to believe there was something going onâ something more than mere acquaintances or friends, but he knew there wasn't. It must've been all in his head because the last time he had heard of you was before you were moved to the first division. He hadn't heard a single word from you since then, nor has he said anythingâ but that was just the way it was. There was nothing to do at this point anyway.
He wasnât with you for all that long, and it was probably just the fact that both of you joined at the same time that naturally started the first conversation. He was far more weary of everything and far less cheerful at the time, and you didn't even work with him most of the time being a researcher, but you didnât mind that one bit. If you had something you wanted to say, you would tell him and heâd just have to listen. At first, he had no idea why you kept talking to him when he paid hardly any mind, but after a while, he found comfort in your conversations. He had started to look forward to talking to you.
It had only been a few months before the defense force noticed how spectacular your work was and quickly called you over to the first division. There wasnât a tearful farewell, or even a casual goodbye for that matter. You disappeared along with a cheerful âIâll see you around!â while you were moving your boxes out and he would hear those words ring in his head for the years to comeâ in your voice. Yet, at the time, all he could do was force a smile and nod.
It had been so many years since you had moved, he didnât even know what you looked like now. Probably still stunning. Definitely still stunning. Although he had the chance to see the 1st division officers a lot, you were a researcher who worked behind the scenes. Naturally, there was no reason he'd bump into you, and he didnât. He never did.
He loved to remember you, but he hated to think about you. He loved to remember the way you would laugh at his silly jokes, the way you would ramble on about the work you had to do daily but would still put in your all, and the way you would always visit him with some cold tea when he trained late into the night if you were still up as well. Actually, he hated thinking about the teaâ it would make him start thinking about you. He would think about how you were now, if you were still pilled with work, and if you remembered him.
If he bumped into you, would you remember his name? Maybe if he cracked a lame joke. Maybe if he gave you a few days to think about it. Maybe if he started listing the things you talked aboutâ his most treasured memories. Maybe then youâd say his name again.
See? This is why he hated thinking about youâ he had things to be doing.
It wasn't like this happened everyday and it wasn't that big of a deal. It just ruined his day a little when it did happen. So if he had to say, he hated dreaming of you.
As you took over his thoughts again, the emergency alarm started to buzz, as if to tell him to snap out of it. He was thankful, he couldn't still be daydreaming like this.
A smaller-sized identified grade kaiju had appeared near the first division quarters, so the third division was doing more backup work this time. Hoshina was taking care of the smaller kaiju in the vicinity that had spawned from the presence of the honju. It felt nice for him to be doing work, it took his mind off his ramblings and cleared his head. He wasn't too worried about the honju, however. Although it was an identified grade, it wasn't anything they hadn't dealt with before and as much as he liked to tease Narumi about how he was always better at smaller kaiju neutralization, he knew Narumi was extraordinary at what he did.
At least that would have been true for any other kaiju of that size and strength, but Narumi seemed to be struggling far more than expected with this one. From his earpiece, he heard Okonogi notify him that the 1st division was asking to send Narumi some help if possible, and he immediately rushed over.
Yet, by the time he got there, Narumi had already neutralized the kaiju in question, although horribly beat up.
âI don't need your help, Hoshina!â Narumi still managed to yell while on the floor, absolutely bleeding out.
âOh, shut up, do you want to die?â Hoshina asked. It didn't take an expert to see that Narumiâs condition was concerning.
Narumi soon fell quiet, probably unconscious, while Hoshina found his earpiece lying on the floor near him. He picked it up, hoping it'd connect to the first division just in case they had lost connection to his vitals.
âHe's unconscious right now, but he seems to still be breathing. However, he's bleeding dangerously from multiple spots. I think a few ribs might also be broken,â Hoshina said. âThere aren't any kaiju nearby at the moment and I'll take care of them if any do comeâ bring the stretcher right away.â
He waited a moment, but there was no response from the earpiece.
âHello?â he asked, hoping for a response. After another moment, he heard it.
âHoshinaâŚ?â
It was you. He would still recognize your voice from anywhere. Oh, how he missed you. His eyes were wide and he had nothing to say all of a sudden. You remembered him. You recognized his voice.
You remembered his name.
âThank you for your report, we lost connection to some of his vitals halfway through. The medics should be there in a few minutes,â you said.
âI'll stand by,â Hoshina said and kept Narumi's earpiece in his ear. He had nothing he wanted to tell you, not one thing in mind, but he wanted to be on the line with youâ even in silence. The medics came in a few minutes like you had told him and took care of Narumi right away.
âThey got here, he should be fine now,â Hoshina said, as if you didn't already know. He just wanted something to say to you.
âI missed working with you,â you said and he couldn't believe his ears. Perhaps he'd wake up from this dream again. Perhaps he'd open his eyes and be utterly disappointed again. But he knew there wasn't even a hint of romantic affection in your words, just the respect you've always had for the work he did, and how you missed doing this job with him. And he did too.
âYeah, I did too,â he said. âI still do.â
You chuckled a little and he could still picture you smiling. âThat made my entire year,â you said. âProbably not the time for this, but we should catch up sometime. If you don't mind, of course.â
Made your year. What did you mean by that? And If he didn't mind? Oh, you didn't know how many times he's dreamed of this day.
âI'd love to,â he said. While he was a little embarrassed to imagine the rest of the first-division team hearing this conversation, that was not going to stop him. He'd be an absolute fool to let this chance go. He has promised himself to give it his all this time.
âAre you seeing anyone?â he asked quietly.
âSorry?â you asked, hoping he'd repeat that. You heard it, but you were afraid you were so delusional you were starting to hear things. Your heartbeat quickened and you waited patiently, hoping it wasn't all in your head.
âDo you have a lover?â he asked a little more clearly, but obviously still nervous and flustered. You had never seen him like this, ever.
âNo,â you replied, a little too quickly. âI do not.â
Relief washed over him and he felt his heartbeat quicken. Oh, thank goodness you didn't have access to his vitals. He was going to make you fall for him somehow.
ââŚdo you?â you asked quietly, after a moment.
âMe?â he asked. âNo, I don't.â
âI see,â you said, but he could hear the soft delight in your voice. He would never miss it.
Perhaps he'd just go for it. There was nothing for him to lose at this point, and he had made his feelings plenty obvious already. If you didn't want him, he'd just try again. He's tried countless times in his dreams already, what's a few more?
âBut I'd love to be yours,â he said and heard you gasp quietly. That one he couldn't read. Was that a little too bold? Far too sudden?
âDid I hear that right?â he faintly heard you scream, asking your fellow first division coworkers. That made him laugh, you hadn't changed one bit. âIâve loved you forever, Hoshina.â
There was absolutely no way. He was going to wake up soon, he just knew it. Well, might as well indulge in the dream for now, then.
âI've definitely loved you for longer,â he said.
âHoshina, I'm going to kill you if this is a dream,â you said, and that caught him off guard. Yet, even that sounded nice to him, and that made him smile. He'd get to see you, at least.
But it wasn't a dream. The way your voice fluttered his heart could never be felt through a dream. The way your laugh filled his soul could not possibly make him feel so warm through a mere dream.
âI cannot wait to see you,â you said softly, your voice so full of love it made him melt.
He couldn't either, but that wasn't exactly what he had on mind this entire time.
âAnd I cannot wait to kiss you.â
#hoshina x reader#hoshina soshiro x reader#soshiro x reader#hoshina soshiro#hoshina#kaiju no. 8 x reader#kaiju no 8 x reader#kn8 x reader#HERE IT IS#okay i really enjoyed writing this though i must be honest#i hope you enjoyed reading#THANK U SM FOR READING#truly did not mean to ramble on for this long#I ACTUALLY LIKED THIS ONE QUITE A BIT like the setting of it i might write a continuation sometime i will see#i usually always write drabbles but i start writing for hoshina and it will always hit 1k words#i truly cannot tell if the dialogue is actually sweet or i get second hand embarrassment reading it (STRONGLY LEANING TOWARDS THE LATTER)#so i will not think about that.#however i love the though of hoshina hopelessly in love for years#will always always melt my heart#stop he is SUCH A LOSERRRRRR#PEOPLE ARE LISTENING WHAT ARE YOU DOING IN PUBLIC#absolutely absolutely adore this man happy hoshina episode
444 notes
¡
View notes
Text
The dash, currently: smĂźt
My muse, at this very moment: what if I wrote out in detail the exact moment Whitebeard cut off Crocodile's hand & cleaved through his face simultaneously-
#ooc: [ off shore ]#[ i enjoy writing smut dont grt me wrong but the horror muse is so high rn. ]#[ everyone blame my partner we're on a horror kick again. ]#[ i also wanna write. crocodile just losing his shit and the process he goes theough with mcmurking someone. not the punishment ]#[ that he gave galdino ( survive if u can ) but like. oh you have absolutely no way of getting out of here above. pick a god and pray. ]#[ croc: surprise. there is no god. ]#[ which is funny bc i have an OC Malekai who DOES make appearances in Croc's life & the rest of my OP muses + OCs ]#[ he fucking traumatizes Kiyomi in a way i hope reads as âthis man would survive Sawâ ]#[ malekai is the âI AM YOUR GODâ to Croc's âTHERE IS NO GOD.â ]
10 notes
¡
View notes
Text
unpopular onion but i don't really gaf about halloween and tumblr is tiring asf for the entire month of october
#like do you guys know that this is a christian holiday and as a non christian im just tired#it's short for all hallows eve which is from christian uuuhh folklore? that all the evil spirits come out on the 31st october#because the 1st november is all saints day which is the purest day of the year and no evil is allowed#like yay spooky stuff. whatever man#i dont mean to piss in anyones cornflakes im glad people are enjoying it i just hope ppl know it's very Christian and its a very Christian#Culture thing to enjoy celebrating it..... ill take any excuse to get dressy and drink but#tumblr enjoyment of halloween is much more on the '''spooky''' side of it? if u know what i mean?#i tend to just avoid for the day of esp when the americans wake up cos americans seem much more into it than other places. probly cos of th#christianity. u know. america is absolutely classic for that. anyway hope u guys are enjoying your pumpkins. blease don't be rude to anyone#whos uncaring. because not everyone is a christian
18 notes
¡
View notes
Text
:((((((((( i ran out of tags . tumblr hates to see me thrive!!!!!!!
ok niku just . read the tags first and then come back here ok đđ i have a lot i still need to say this is so important to me . this fic changed my life .
(WARNING this got long âŚ.. really long âŚ.. mysteriously. i got carried away đ PLS donât feel the need to respond to any of this btw i mean that sincerely i know this is kind of a Lot i just need you to know much i adored this fic <3333)
BACK TO GOJO ok so his talk w readerâŚâŚ it was just so satisfying to see them finally get to tell someone about their experience. it mustâve been such a great feeling for them !!!! to get some of it off their chest :((( ⌠and to have Gojo Fucking Satoru our safe harbour of a man there to believe them and listen to them and reassure them. heâs so mature when it comes down to it and you captured that so wellâŚâŚ like as much as he acts childish and teasing this is exactly how i picture him interacting w someone he doesnât know in a situation like this!! heâs flirty and unserious but he tells you heâll protect you and means it. (iâm so down bad it physically hurts)
sorry iâm abt to go on a tangent i think BUT I JUST đđ really⌠REALLY love their dynamicâŚ. how it evolves so much even though he doesnât even know reader exists for most loops!! and to them heâs just this beautiful Something that they canât help but look atâŚâŚ âinhumanly attractiveâ is a great way to put it like heâs justâŚ.. this magnetic forceâŚâŚâŚ.. and i feel like even before they speak to him for the first time they probably find some kind of hope in him.
AND thatâs so important bc to me thatâs like . the main Theme of the fic? hope. reader has to find some kind of hope to make it through shibuya and more often than not they find it in gojo!!! in just seeing a familiar handsome face, in learning how to navigate the timeline through his actions, in talking to him and finally having him on their side. their choice to trust him fully at the end just made me soooo insane. and obv the hope theme continues even after that because gojo believes in them!!! believes that theyâll be okay in the prison realmâŚ.. more on that later actually bc i Still. have a lot to talk abt đđđ iâm just wildly flipping through my notes at this point iâm sorry to throw this at u when weâve barely interacted but in my defense this fic reached into my actual skull and started rewiring my brain so!!!! yeah.
i got completely sidetracked there but . yes!! the conversation between them when gojo gets sent back in time is. so good!!!!! so wonderfully written!!!!! i havenât mentioned it that much yet i think but i love your writing i devoured every lineâŚâŚ i struggle w the flow of my own writing SO much but this just flows so incredibly well??? it was sm fun to read????? and the rhythm of the paragraphs (that sounds. Insane but i hope u know what i mean đđ) is so distinct!!! and ofc there are SO many banger lines in this in generalâŚ. the gore descriptions and the lines abt reader and their fixation on hope. on gojo!! âHe's a terrifying sort of beauty and you can't help but be captivated by him.â <- this is just one example but!! idk iâm just so enamored by ur writing style.
and the dialogue!!!!!!!! i cried!!!!!! itâs so consistently gojoâŚ. him going all âoh?â âinterestingâŚâ but not explaining anything ⌠the âding ding ding!â after making reader guess what he should just be telling them (itâs the teacher in him <33) AND AND AND these too!!!! :3
âJust think of it like having a lot of MP.â
âYou know, your technique kind of reminds me of save scumming.âÂ
THEY JUST FEEL SO CANON thatâs our gojoâŚâŚ thatâs exactly what he would sayâŚâŚ heâs so unserious and so funny and so charming đđ sigh.
ANDDDDD reader telling him good luck!!!! gojo beaming and squeezing their shoulder!!!!! the lil wave!!!!! đĽşđĽş that made me smile so wide niku heâs so infuriatingly cute . it felt so genuine!!!! pls know that this gojo will probably live in my brain forever like genuinely . iâve been brainrotting over him all week and this was the final nail in the coffin. iâll never be free.
ok but also !!!! extremely important !!!!!!! before i get to the ending i just need to tell u . how much i loved kenjaku in this âŚâŚâŚ.. kenjaku nation (me & six others) will never forget these crumbs of content like he just feels so real!!!!! and heâs so interesting!!!!! made me realize how truly down bad i am for him bc these lines made me so fucking happy đđ brain started releasing serotonin like CRAZY iâm so ashamed.
âYou can come out, you know.â
âHow interesting.â
"I'll be nice, though. I'll make it painless."
âŚâŚ.. heâs just âŚ.. yeah. yeahhhhh. đđ iâll never be normal abt him. i think itâs SUCH an interesting detail that he always makes readerâs death painless in every single loopâŚ. he never lies about it. that feels so in character to me too!!! heâs kinda fascinated at first and when that interest disappears he kills them. but he doesnât make it unecessarily cruel because thereâs just. no need. kenjaku is a sicko but heâs oddly polite at times and iâm justâŚâŚ. yeah. gonna need you to take over for gege akutami actually đđ get in the writerâs chair!!! the fandom needs u!!!!!
wait while weâre on this topic pls just know the entire confrontation between reader and kenjaku was one of my favorite moments in the entire fic <333 not JUST because iâm a kenny stan okâŚâŚâŚ readerâs resignation and âI appreciate it.â made my brain spin because itâs just . kinda chilling? kinda sick? that they arenât even really afraid of death anymore⌠or more like theyâre just so frighteningly used to it.
AND AND ANDDDD niku your writing in this scene đľâđŤđľâđŤđľâđŤ gutted me like a fish.
Time doesn't flow in the box. He didn't lie. You die again.
i exploded btw . ackkk i wish i could explain it better i just!!! :< adore your writing. these lines made me go completely batshit theyâre just so good. and the âtime doesnât flow in the boxâ line ⌠how that ties in with the ending and readerâs choice. whewww.
segway time <3333 this is the final rant i promise!!! i just need to talk about the ending bc it was so perfect and like many other things in this fic it made me insane âŚ. have i said that already âŚ. probably at least a couple times đđđ itâs true ok!! itâs just sooo interesting to me and obviously so wellwritten and fitting and just. thematically ties everything together so well? i was FLOORED
hhhhh i donât know where to begin so iâll just start w the final convo between reader and gojo :> he asks for their name !!!!!!! i cried !!!!!!!!!! calling someone by their name or knowing their name as a form of like . Closeness or Affection is one of my greatest weaknesses and i also think itâs soooo telling that GOJO wants to know Your Name. he wants to know you. to hear that from someone who seems so inhumanly beautiful and violentâŚ.. for him to kind of extend a final olive branch and attempt to connect w you :((((( it just says so much without spelling it out and i. started chewing at my desk. itâs so good!!!!!!! such a genius way to tie everything together!!!! and readerâs final words to himâŚ
âThank you, Satoru Gojo.â You burn the glittering glow of his brilliant bright blue eyes into your mind. And then, everything is engulfed in an unending black.Â
first of all!!! so so sooooo pretty. wowow. second of all THE THANK YOU âšď¸âšď¸âšď¸âšď¸âšď¸ thatâs also such a perfect conclusionâŚâŚ.. reader finally put their trust in someone and had that faith returned. and they thank him!!!! i like to think it means something to gojo tooâŚ. likeeee how often do people really thank him for what he does? how often is his hard work to protect people acknowledged and appreciated? sorry to bring gojo back into the discussion all the time sadly i AM in love w himâŚ.. đđ and this fic made it worse so technically itâs your fault. kind of.
okay so my brain is kinda spinning away again so iâll get to the final final thing!!!! for real this time!!!!! readerâs decision to be imprisoned in gojoâs stead⌠thatâs so . genius? iâm so in awe??????? it makes so much sense from a character perspective based on what theyâve been through â after being at the mercy of time for so long, wouldnât it be nice to be free of it? completely? itâs almost kind of chilling and just the idea of it scares me LMAO but it makes sm sense that reader would be drawn to it.
AND like i mentioned before!!! how it leads to a deeper connection between them and gojo, and how at the very end of the fic heâs the one who has faith in them. faith that theyâll be alright, of sound mind.
âŚâŚ and that brings me to the final final final thing because. itâs just like the opening poem!! reader is the cat in the box. nobody can say for sure if theyâre alright, not to mention alive, until the box is opened. and we donât get to know!!! you leave us on a cliffhanger and thatâs so good bc it really is like the cat in the boxâŚ. we can only wonder but it also gives us the freedom to decide for ourselves if we think they come out okay or not and iâm justâŚâŚâŚâŚ.. in love. with this fic. and the ending and the reader and gojo and you.
hopefully youâve noticed atp but i really did go completely insane reading this đđ i said it at the beginning but just to reiterate!!: for SURE one of my all time favorite gojo fics . AND loopfics in generalâŚ. thank you sm for your hard work :â3 aaaa i canât tell u how much i admire the time you spent working on this??? your storytelling and writing and characterization skills????? i genuinely feel sooo giddy and excited and happy rn bc. i just adored this fic!!!! iâm so lucky i got to read it!!!!! :33 pls pat your gojo on the head from me and let him know i love himâŚ. itâll boost his ego but thatâs a risk iâm willing to take đđ i hope you have theeeee loveliest day or night a human being can have bc you made mine <3333333
beyond the unending night (reader + satoru gojo)
notes: it's finally here. the long awaited halloween fic. yes, i know it's march, but i did start working on it in september. haha. there's so much i could say, but i will leave it at that this fic is, in every sense, a fic that i would not normally write. and yet here we are.
contains: f!reader (no physical description or gendered language is used), no explicit romantic pairing (though you don't have to look hard to find the reader x gojo implications), major character death (played with), semi-graphic depictions of death, blood and violence, minor suicide ideation, canon retelling (lines of dialogue are pulled from the jjk english dub because i'm a dirty dub watcher). opening poem is from higurashi no naku koro ni (minagoroshi-hen). fic title is from giga's beyond the way.
please note that this is a time loop fic and, by nature contains repeating scenes (particularly from canon). please do not read this fic if you do not like that sort of thing.
wc: 21,883 read on ao3 (account required)
Please tell me what happened in this night. It's like the cat inside the box.
Please tell me what happened in this night. You don't know if the cat in the box is dead or alive. Please tell me what happened in this night. The cat in the box was dead.
The first time, it is instantâ you donât even know whatâs happening.
The second, it is by flame, but you barely realize it, barely feel itâ a second of mind numbing heat before nothing.
The third time, it is something slicing across your throat; you see the blood spilling everywhere, then the pain followsâ a moment of pure agony before nothing.
The fourth time you realize whatâs going on; whatâs really going on.
You realize youâve been dying.
You think your head is going to explode.
At first, you think itâs because the subway platform is crowded, insanely soâ there are hundreds of people shoved into this space alongside you, packed like sardines in a can. Youâve never been one for crowds, but itâs the reality of things when you live in Tokyo. For the most part, youâve learned to accept it, but even this crowd is a little much and you wish you hadnât listened to your friends when they said you should go party in Shibuya for Halloween; you donât even like partying.
Thereâs a sharp pain in your temple followed by a thought so loud that it feels like someone is screaming it at you through a megaphone positioned right next to your ear.
Itâs the night of October 31, 2018â Halloween in Shibuya.
For the eighth time.
Before you can even question the thought, images flash in your mindâs eye, blurry at first before they come into focus. The platform gates open. Chaos ensues. People dropping onto the subway tracksâ spontaneously bursting into flameâ their heads, necks sliced off, stomachs cut openâ
Bile rapidly builds up in your throat, and you clamp your jaw shut, trying to force it down. Not here. Not now. You try to focus on something else, anything else happening outside of your brain. Thereâs a pair next to you musing about the people standing on the subway tracks, wondering what the two (the four?) of them are talking about. You blink back tears as you look. You can only see two: a freakishly tall man with white hair dressed in all black, and another man, dressed in strange, yet more traditional looking garb. Are those costumes too? You donât have a lot of time to think about it as another image forces its way into your brain.
Your corpseâ lifeless on the ground.
Your corpseâ burning to ash.
Your corpseâ bleeding out.
You canât hold it in any more. Every fiber in your being screams at you to get away from the subway tracks, but instead you rush toward them, shoving people left and right as your hands desperately reach the stability of the gate. You grip it like a lifeline as you retch over the side of it, the contents of your stomach spilling all over the subway tracks.
Thereâs a quiet murmur of disgust behind you but you canât be bothered to respond. You need to get out of here. You need to leave. You need to do it beforeâ
The gates open and the crowd starts to move like a tidal wave, pushing and shoving their way through the gate. Youâre swept away, vomit long forgotten as you and a few dozen others tumble onto the railway.
Alarm bells go off in your brain, loud and deafening. A voice in the back of your head screams for you to get off the track! Get off the track now beforeâ
The platform erupts into a cacophony of screams, drenched in horror, saturated in fear. You are surrounded by people, by corpsesâ beheaded, sliced open, bursting into flames.
Your terror roots you to the ground as the carnage ensues around you. Itâs only when another person, another corpse, dressed in a magical girl costume collides with your body that you can finally move. But itâs too late, you realize, despaired and helpless, as your bodies fall to the ground.
Itâs too late.
You die an eighth time.
You think your chest is going to explode.
At first, you think itâs because itâs so hard to breathe, frustratingly soâ there are hundreds of people squeezed into this space alongside you, packed like cattle for slaughter. You've never been one for crowds, but itâs the reality of things when youâre in Shibuya. For the most part, youâve come to accept it, but this crowd is way too much and you wish you had just stayed home and ordered a pizza; though honestly, the thought of pizza kind of makes you sick.
Thereâs a dull throbbing in your forehead, followed by a thought so loud that it feels like someoneâs hollering at you from a loudspeaker thatâs been installed in your brain.
Itâs the night of October 31, 2018â Halloween in Shibuya.
You think it's the ninth time now.
Behind you, you hear a woman screaming, her voice crazed and terrified. You turn your head automatically to look at her and when you see her you realize you recognize her yellow and white magical girl costume. You can say with certainty that youâve never seen her before and yetâ
Before you can ruminate more on it, imagesâ memories assault your mindâs eye with a clarity that is absolutely sickening. That woman colliding into you, your bodies slamming into the subway tracks before you bothâ Your stomach churns violently,
and you feel like youâre going to puke, but you force it downâ can't afford to right now. Instead, you make your way over to the woman.
Her head is in her hands as she mutters over and over again about how everyone is going to die. People around her figure that being stuck in here with the crowd has probably gotten to her. You, however, know better.
â...hey,â you say softly.
Her muttering comes to an abrupt halt and slowly she raises her head to look at you. Thereâs a flash of recognition in her eyes and she grabs you violently by the shoulders. âYou! You know, donât you? That weâre going to die?â
If it werenât for the fact that you have indeed experienced death here eight times already, then you would have thought sheâs lost her mind. Slowly, you nod and she seems relieved by it, her grip on you loosening.
You canât help but feel a little relieved tooâ glad to know that youâre not the only one experiencing this nightmare. Thereâs a voice in the back of your mind thatâs confused though. Why is she only remembering now? But then again, it took you a few times before you realized yourself.
Around you people start to gasp, and you glance back toward the railway to see an abnormally tall man with white hair and dressed in all black jump down from the atrium onto the railway. He lands rather gracefully for someone who jumped at least one floor and starts to converse with the other three people (you think they're peopleâ two of them are in some pretty wild costumes) on the track.
Wait. Isnât it supposed to be just two people: the tall man and the one in the traditional clothes? Where did the other two come from?
âWe have to get out of here,â the woman says. âBefore they kill us.â
Her grip shifts from your shoulders to your arms and she starts to shove at everyone around you, trying to force her way through. She seems to know, just as well as you do, that any second now the gates will open and the crowd will start spilling onto the railway, littering the tracks with bodies and ash. Neither of you can let yourselves get swept up with the rest. If you do and you end up on those tracks, youâre as good as dead.
People move aside at a snail's pace, many of them too focused on trying to see what is going on on the subway tracks. This isn't good. You need to move faster or elseâ
The collective sound of the gates opening echoes in your head, a metallic hiss that makes your stomach fold into itself. Before either of you can stop yourselves, you both whip your heads back to look, to confirm, but itâs a mistake.
The briefest lapse in attention is enough to pull you both into the current of people, and try as you might to fight against it, the crowd splits you and the woman apart as it swallows you both whole. Youâre both spat onto the tracks at the edge of the platform and your head collides with the metal rails of the track. It feels like your skull is about to crack in two, and it takes every fiber in your being to scramble to your feet. You're close enough to the platform that if you can just climb up it, then you'll beâ
âHelp! Help!â
Itâs the womanâs voice. You turn to see that she ended up a couple meters away from you. Sheâs staring at you, eyes brimming with fear filled tears as she extends her hand in your direction. You take a step toward her, reaching out.
And then, her entire body is engulfed in flames, the skirt of her magical girl costume a ring of fiery death around her.
Her blood curdling scream is the only thing you can hear, her burning flesh, the only thing you can see. You donât know what to do.
You canât save her.
There's something touching your back. You can barely feel the pressure, but it's hot, scorching hot, mind numbingly hot, painfully hothothot.
You know this sensation. You have felt it before. The scent of burning cloth, burning hair, burning flesh clogs your nostrils. It's too late, you realize, helpless, despaired as the flames eat at your bodyâ your soon to be corpse.
It's too late.
You die a ninth time.
Itâs October 31, 2018â Halloween in Shibuya.
This is the tenth time.
Your head hurts, but you ignore it. Thereâs something more important that you need to attend to. You immediately make your way to the woman you met during your last round, the one you watched burn to death. Her costume is still pristine, unmarred by fire and death.
For now.
Sheâs not screaming this time and while thereâs a little voice in the back of your mind thatâs concerned by this, you try to ignore it.
âUm, excuse me?â you say when she doesnât acknowledge you as you approach.
The woman turns to look at you. Youâre taken aback by the distinct lack of recognition and it feels almost as if the woman you encountered previously and the one before you now are two separate people. In a way, they technically are.
âDo I⌠know you?â she finally asks when you donât say anything.
Your mouth is dry. How do you even answer that? You donât know her. You just watched her die twice. You know her. She begged you for help. You couldnât save her.
If you explain all of this you know sheâs just going to think youâve lost your mind. Maybe you already haveâ youâve died nine times after all.
You give her a weak smile. âI⌠just wanted to tell you that you think your costume looks great.â
She blinks, taken aback by your words. Thereâs no doubt that she wasnât expecting you to say that. Itâs the truth though, her costume is nice; sheâs dressed up as a character from a magical girl anime that was popular a couple years ago.
âThank you! I made it myself!â The woman breaks out into a genuine smile and your heart hurts. In a few moments sheâll die and the costume she worked so hard to make will be nothing but ash on the subway tracks.
âSorry,â you blurt out before you can stop yourself.
âFor?â
For watching her die. For not being able to save her.â...I just kind of came up to you all of a suddenâŚâ
She laughs. âItâs okay.â
Itâs not.
You consider telling her that she should try to move. That if she stays here she will die. You donât want her to die. Again. You can still hear her screaming in your ears as she burned to death. You want to tell her.
You donât.
âStay safe, okay?â you say. It almost sounds like youâre begging.
She gives you another smile, kind and gentle and you think youâre far too undeserving of it for not telling her what fate will soon befall her. âYou too.â
âIâll try,â you say and move away from the woman just as the gates open and the crowd surges toward the railway. You do not fight it as you are swept up into the crowd and despite what you said, you do not try, this time, to stay safe.
You die for the tenth time.
Itâs October 31, 2018â Halloween in Shibuya.
This is the fourteenth time.
Thereâs a slight ache in your head, but itâs subtle enough that you can ignore it. The pain you feel lessens with each round and you think it��s a sign that your body no longer feels the need to remind you of the precarious situation that youâre in.
Or maybe you are just becoming numb to everything: your death, the death of the people around you, the death of the woman in the magical girl costumeâ
You try not to think about it too much as you reach into your bag to check the time on your phone: 8:37PM. Thereâs not a lot of time: you need to move.
At the very end of your last attempt to escape this nightmare you realized something. You need to know exactly what is going on around you so you can plan accordingly: where to not stand, where to not go. Up until now, youâve relied almost solely on the knowledge gained from your previous failures to try and survive, but obviously itâs not enough to keep you alive. Youâre not sure why you didnât realize this earlier. The panic, maybe? The fear?
Maybe you really are becoming numb to all this.
Unlike previous iterations, this time you elect to move closer to the gate, positioning yourself somewhere against it where youâre unlikely to be pushed off the platform in a couple minutes when they open. You take great care to place yourself where you can see the ones responsible for the slaughter very clearly. At the beginning, you could only see one, the one who looks the most human, but with each repetition, the other two have become more and more clear. You wonder why. You donât have time to think about it.
Murmurs nearby alert you to the arrival of the fourth major player involved in the nightâs events. You look up and see the white haired man dressed in all black descending upon the platform like an angel from the heavens. This is your first time really looking at him and you realize thereâs something almost inhumanly attractive about him. You canât quite put your finger on it, but it occurs to you that you shouldnât even try; you donât have the time to be drooling over some handsome stranger.
Youâve naturally never taken the time to try and listen to whatever the conversation the man and his opponents have before all hell breaks loose on the platform, but you try and lean closer to listen. Itâs hard to hear over the dozens of conversations going on behind you, but you try anyway. There might be a clue to whatâs actually going onâ or better yet, a clue on how to get out of it.
Itâs obvious that youâre missing context from what bits of the conversation you do manage to hear, but honestly it all sounds like stuff out of a shounen battle manga. There is one part of the exchange that you manage to hear with a startling sort of clarity. It feels almost as if your heart stops beating as your blood turns ice cold in your veins.
âIf I run away, youâre just gonna kill everyone here, right?â the man in black asks.
Thereâs a pause, and if your heart was still beating itâd be long enough for just four heartbeats.
âIf you run away?â The monster with cane repeats, the sadistic grin spreading wide across its features, displaying its charcoal black teeth. The gravelly sound of its voice sets fire to the blood in your veins, your stilled heart thumping wildly, in fear, in anticipation. Soon. Itâs happening soon. You brace yourself. âWeâre going to do that even if you donât!â
You die a fourteenth time.
Itâs October 31, 2018â Halloween in Shibuya.
This is the seventeenth time now.
Things are going surprisingly well, even as the people around you tumble onto the tracks. You manage to hold on, desperation keeping you from falling into the abyss. This is good, you tell yourself, despite the fact that itâs not the first time youâve achieved this. Every little victory is worth celebrating, but you have to remain vigilant. This is yet another information gathering loop, and while you know that maybe this time youâll be lucky and live, thereâs still a chance, a big one, at that, that you will die again.
You have to make the most of each and every death.
Itâs such a morbid thought, but the ends justify the means, or so you tell yourself. If you have to die a few times to make it out of this unending nightmare, then so be it.
The spot youâre in is a good vantage point; itâs easier to see everything happening below you. Itâs so good that itâs actually sickening. You watch as the monster with the cane and one with what looks like branches for eyes slaughter the people on the track, mowing them down, setting them aflame. In another life, in another many lives, that was you down there, and for what feels like the first time in forever, you feel like youâre going to be sick. You feel like, at some point, you likened the scene before you to some kind of shounen battle manga, but you think that was wrong.
This is borderline horror.
Everything plays out before you like a scene out of an action horror flick. If you didnât know better, youâd think you were just an extra on set, but you know the reality is that youâre just an extra to whatever phantasmal battle is taking place in front of you. The monsters and the strangely dressed man all try to attack the man in black, but he manages to block every hit effortlessly, as if he is protected by some sort of invisible barrier. When it seems the two monsters are about to hit him, he merely jumps out of the way and the two monsters seem to collide, the force of their combined strength sending a gust of air throughout the crowd. The man in black neatly lands on a nearby platform half wall and says something about curse users, whatever those are, to the monsters, before he starts to mock them, pulling down his strange blindfold in the process.
And this, youâve found, is where you start to get in trouble.
You clearly remember thinking, at some point, previously, that there was something attractive about this man. You still donât know what it is. You havenât had the time to try and figure it out, but there is one thing that you do know: you canât keep your eyes off of him.
He drops back down onto the tracks, antagonizing his opponents in an arrogant tone as he approaches. When he comes to a stop between the two monsters, the second round of their fight begins. They try to hit him, but he dodges still, gracefully, fluidly, like the three of them are embroiled in some sort of passionate, yet violent dance.
You cannot turn your eyes away as he cruelly rips off one of the arms of the one-eyed monster.
You cannot turn your eyes away as he brutally kicks the branch-eyed monster in the abdomen, sending them flying to the other side of the platform.
You cannot turn your eyes away as he effortlessly hurls the one-eyed, now one-armed monster in the same direction, sending them smashing into the wall.
Only when the man in black seems to fly to the other side is the spell over you seemingly broken. Still, your eyes give chase, and your body too, rushing from one side of the platform to the other. You canât lose sight of this fight, you tell yourself, settling in a spot you recall being safe during your last round. Doing so could mean another death, another loop, another October 31.
You watch as the man in black acrobatically dodges what looks to be vines or roots that the monster with branches for eyes seems to have summoned from the depths of the Tokyo metro. He lands on the monsterâs shoulders, balancing on them as he uses its branch-eyes for leverage. The look in the manâs eyes is so crazed that you can see it from where youâre standing. He says something to it and thenâ
With a feral and sadistic smile, he rips their eyes straight out of their skull.
Your heart is pounding wildly in your chest as you watch the fight unfold. It is horrifyingly, disgustingly violent, yet still you watch as people on the track are killed by the human-like person, blood raining down as their freshly beheaded skulls go flying into the air. He and the one-eyed monster launch their counter attacks against the man in black and the blowback is so intense the power goes out causing everyone to scream.
Thereâs a faint glow where the man in black is standing that starts to grow brighter and brighter. You can make out his form turning to face the wall, and it seems almost like heâs slammed the monster that had branches for eyes against it with some sort of telekinetic power. Despite the panic from the people around you, you manage to hear him, chuckling like a mad man as he draws closer and closer to the monster.
The one-eyed monster yells out a name, a name you think must belong to the man, but he doesnât hear it. He doesnât hear the one-eyed monster as he extends his hands out toward the eyeless monster, exerting some kind of force that you canât really see. He doesnât hear the one-eyed monster as the eyeless monsterâs entire body is vaporized in a flash of blue light. He doesnât hear the one-eyed monster, as the lights flicker back on revealing a smoking crater stained with purple blood where the eyeless monster once stood.
But you do.
Satoru Gojo.
You make sure to remember that.
Itâs October 31, 2018â Halloween in Shibuya.
And this is the eighteenth time.
You watch as the man called Satoru Gojo stalks through the crowd of people on the subway tracks, chasing after the one-eyed fire monster. It throws people at him, in a clear attempt to slow him down.
It does not work.
Satoru Gojo climbs back onto the platform in a way that you can only describe as inhuman, and the people nearby shriek and move away from him, out of terror, out of fear. You, on the other hand, draw closer, refusing to lose sight of him.
He is relentless in his pursuit of the one-eyed monster. It continues to throw person after person at him, but he does not stop and the people float there, suspended in midair before they are gently lowered to the ground by some unseen force and scramble away.
No one dares get close to Satoru Gojo, everyone on the platform seems to know that doing so means certain death, yourself included. But you still feel the need to keep an eye on him. The monster and the strangely dressed man are focusing more on him than the crowdâ anyone in between is just collateral damage.
But not you.
Especially since youâve made it this farâ youâve never made it this far before.
A voice echoes throughout the platform; you realize itâs the automated announcement.
An eight car train is pulling in. Please wait behind the yellow line.
You can hear everyoneâs relief coming from all sides. The train is coming! The train is coming! A ripple of hope makes its way throughout the crowd. With the train comes the chance to get off the platform and the senseless violence thatâs been happening here. Some of the people around you are talking excitedly and others are running toward the gates, toeing the yellow line theyâve been instructed to wait behind. And you, you should be excited, you should be hopeful.
All you feel is dread.
It eats at your stomach, at your chest, at your mind. Clawing and gnawing at you in a way that leaves you paralyzed on the platform. Thereâs something wrong here. You canât be sure because youâve never made it this far, never survived long enough for the train to come, but something is just not right.
No.
You must be paranoid. The train coming is a good thing. It has to be a good thing. You are just paranoid. Itâs normal. Itâs natural. Dying seventeen times would do that to anyoneâ rob them of hope, condemn them to an existence full of fear.
It is not lost on you that the thought of dying more than once, much less, dying seventeen times is not normal or natural in the very slightest.
But you need hope, you crave it, wildly, desperately. The hope of freedom, of escape is the only thing getting you through this unending nightmare. Every time you die, every time you wake, it is with the hope that maybe, just maybe this iteration will be different, maybe this one will be the one where you make it out, make it back to your friends who must be waiting for you, make it back home where you can be safe and sound. You need the hope to keep going. Because without hope, what will you have left?
The train screeches as it pulls into the station and the people around you laugh in both disbelief and relief. They start to push and shove toward it, fighting to be able to board because thereâs no way everyone here will be able to get on an eight car train and being left behind at this point is practically synonymous with death. Unable to decide if you believe in the train as a symbol of hope or a new layer of fear, you are pushed along with the crowd toward it.
The doors of the train cars slide open and the current passengers all rush off as they disembark. You as well as everyone else on the platform can see with a horrifying clarity that the train is filled to the brim with monsters. Monsters that reach out and grab anyone their hands can reach. The woman to your left. The person to your right.
You.
Hope is gone.
What do you have left?
You die for the eighteenth time.
Itâs October 31, 2018â Halloween in Shibuya.
This is probably the twenty-sixth time now.
If there is anything this entire ordeal has taught you, it is that you are resilient. Whether it is some innate trait that you never had any reason to uncover before or just a byproduct of being trapped in an unending cycle of being dead and not dead, you don't know. What you do know, though, is that even if you no longer have hope, you at least have your resilience.
Whether you want it or not.
You check the time. Itâs 8:35PM. Something flickers in your chest, like a faint light in a sea of darkness, but you ignore it. You donât have time right now.
With a nimbleness born from your previous failures, you weave your way through the crowd. Youâve done this enough times to know where the gaps areâ who will yield and who wonât. Your destination is the escalator that leads off the platform and up to a higher part of the station. Youâd noticed previously that the escalator along with every other entrance onto the platform will eventually be blocked by vines or roots of some sort (the work of the branch-eyed monster probably). Itâs not a perfect plan because you donât know what happens on the other side, but whatever it is has to be better than whatever is happening on the side that youâve been on.
Youâd tried to get to the stairs during your last two rounds, but youâd just missed it. You hadnât been fast enough and had gotten caged and slaughtered along with the rest. But this time, this time you have more time. Itâs just one minute, but itâs enough. You know it is.
The flickering in your heart grows stronger. Hope. You try not to pay attention to itâ you donât want to be disappointed yet again. But you want to so badly. A voice in the back of your mind tells you to focus on the good, tells you that if there was truly no way out of this endless nightmare, then why would you get more and more time with each round to escape your fate?
With that thought in mind, you break out into a run, recklessly rushing through the crowd, shoving anyone who will not yield to the side. Out of the corner of your eye you can see the stark white of Satoru Gojoâs hair as he descends upon the platform.
You need to get up those stairs.
Now.
If you remember correctly, the roots and vines donât close off the area the moment he touches down, but a little after they start talking, so you think there is probably some time, but you canât leave it to chance.
The stairs are packed, and for some reason no one is moving. The escalator right next to it is just as full and the power doesnât seem to be working. You donât have time for this. You clamber onto the escalatorâs rubber handrail, ignoring the weird feeling that passes through your body as you do so. You donât have the time to worry about whatever that is. The people around you start exclaiming around you, but you donât care, you donât listen. You wobble as you try to balance yourself and when you think youâre steady you try to run.
But you trip.
And you die for the twenty-sixth time.
Itâs October 31, 2018â Halloween in Shibuya.
This marks the thirtieth time.
And you have, finally, finally made it up the escalator, up the stairs with barely a second to spare. You pause, glancing back as the roots or vines or whatever the hell they are seal off the entrance to the platform. You notice that the area where the plants come down is actually fairly clear, despite the crowd. It seems weird, but you donât dwell on it.
A strange feeling envelops your entire body and your legs turn into jelly. As you sink to the floor, you realize what youâre feeling is relief as all the tension, maybe thirty iterations of Halloween 2018 worth, seeps from your being. You don't remember the last time you felt anything other than fear and dread; itâs weird, but not unwelcome.
That voice in the back of your mind tells you that you can't relax just yet: October 31st isnât over. Even though you have repeated this night again and again, burning the events that play out on the platform into your memory, you do not know a single thing that happens over here. It would be smart to scope everything out.
Legs still shaky, you rise to your feet and start walking. You think itâs probably for the best to try and head up to the surface and you make your way up to the next floor.
Itâs packed with people here too, but relatively peaceful, especially when you compare it to the pandemonium taking place beneath your feet. Still, you can make out the undeniable hum of displeasure resonating throughout the crowd. People complaining about how uncomfortable their costumes are, people complaining about how much they want to go home, people complaining about how much their nights have been ruined because they couldnât meet up with their friends andâ
A thought hits you like an eight car train.
You were supposed to meet up with your friends.
Thatâs why you were on the platform in the first placeâ you were waiting for them to arrive, but then the trains stopped working, and people just started pouring into the station out of seemingly nowhere (you think you heard some people say theyâd come from the crossing?). Soon after that is when everything went to shit.
You check your phone, though, for once itâs not to look at the time (8:56PM). Instead, you open LINE to check your friendsâ group chat. Thereâs no signal here, for whatever reason, so if there are any new messages, you havenât received them. The last one was from Kei, mentioning he was enroute, but as far as you know, youâre the only one who made it to Shibuya before the trains stopped.
Did one of them maybe make it here though? Surely, you would have run into them ifâ
The image of a woman in a magical girl costume fills your vision, burning to death before your very eyes as her screams echo in your ears. It is the first time in what feels like forever that youâve thought about her and your stomach churns violently. You couldnât help her, you canât even help yourself, so how could you even expect to do the same for your friends if they were here? The mere thought of having to watch them die over and over is almost enough to send you over the edge. You donât know if you could do it.
Would you even have a choice?
No. You can't think like that. You have choices. You've had choices. If you didnât then, you would still be down below, among the fire and brimstone. Dying, if not dead already. However, instead, you are up here, where, for the moment, it is quiet and peaceful.
That thought, in of itself, is enough to give you a shred of solace, a glimmer of hope.
You take a deep breath and fiddle with your phone a little more, changing your lock screen to a picture you and your friends took at a photo booth not too long ago. The four of you are huddled together, faces squished as if you're all struggling to fit in the frame, despite there being plenty of room. You're mid-laugh because it's the first time you've been in a photo booth in years, Mio and Shin are grinning mischievously and finally, Kei is smiling, but only just slightly, the embarrassment clear on his face. It's probably only been a few months since you all took this picture, but the fact that it feels like it's been years makes your heart ache.
You press your forehead to the screen, like a prayer, like a promise.
You will make it out of this nightmare.
No matter what.
A shrill scream yanks you from your thoughts and you are instantly on your feet, alert as your eyes flit around frantically to identify the source. It doesn't take long for you to find it and when you do, you think you might have stumbled upon a new layer of horror to this nightmare.
Itâs not the corpse, dangling by a noose, that terrifies youâ by now youâve seen dozens upon dozens of dead bodies that the sight of just one more doesnât faze you in the slightest. The thing thatâs the most mortifying, thatâs the most disturbing is that right next to where the body is tied are two girls, two teenage girls still dressed in their school uniforms.
You can accept monsters and weirdly dressed men being responsible for the carnage tonight, but children too? Both girls look like theyâre barely in high school and try as you might to rationalize things, to chalk it up to coincidence, you cannot ignore the ominous energy radiating from them.
The very notion that these two children could have killed someone here is a hard pill to swallow, but so is the fact that youâve died.
And youâve had to swallow that pill thirty times now, so whatâs once more?
âListen up!â one of the girls yells over the crowd, but she is mostly ignored; you donât think everyone here has noticed her and the corpse dangling from the rafters. She scowls and turns to the other girl and says something quietly to her. The other girl nods and almost instantly sheâs stringing up another person, another example. You want to look away so badly, and yet you cannot bring yourself to and you watch the poor soul choke to death.
âI said listen, you dumb monkeys!â the girl shouts, and this time sheâs caught most of the crowdâs attention. âIf you donât want to end up like these two, youâll listen to what we have to say!â
There is clear dissent among the crowd, people dismissive as they utter their disbelief. Some seem to think itâs a prank, but you know better. It takes two more examples before the crowd goes silent before the two high schoolers.
âAbout damn time!â The girl roars and then points toward the atrium, which is currently covered by roots and branches. âAll of you move over there!â
You have a bad feeling about this.
Still, you comply; the girls have made it abundantly clear that failure to do so will result in death, though, at this point, you're almost certain this iteration is a bust and death is all but imminent. You try to keep positiveâ thinking you can at least gather information or, who knows, maybe there's a chance that this one is the one.
Yet when you step onto the mound of vines and branches that cover the atrium it feels as if you've crossed the threshold into hell. Your footing is stable⌠but for how long?
An eight car train is pulling in. Please wait behind the yellow line.
It's faint, but you can hear the announcement from below. The liquid in your stomach curdles at the sound as you recall the train and, in particular, what is on board. Soon enough, those monsters will be swarming the platform, massacring everyone in reach, guzzling down their blood, feasting on their fleshâ
It dawns on you that the people on the platform are the monsters' first course.
And you, and those around you here in the shrubbery, are the second.
As you realize this, the branches and vines disintegrate beneath your very feet and suddenly you are mid airâ falling, falling into the abyss below.
You die for the thirtieth time.
Itâs October 31, 2018â Halloween in Shibuya.
You've done this nearly sixty times now.
After countless failures, you've decided that you're just not going to go upstairs any more. No matter where you try to go, you still end up herded onto the death trap above the platform where you ultimately fall to your death. You've tried positioning yourself in the same spot, tried bracing yourself for the dropâ but nothing seems to work: upon landing, assuming you manage to land without hurting yourself or dying in midair (which has happened a couple times) you get grabbed and killed by one of the monsters from the train. It's probably not impossible, you just don't have the physical prowess or reflexes for it.
If anything, you can try again later, but you sincerely hope you don't have to.
It's 8:32PM, and you have plenty of time to get to your chosen spot for this loopâ it's close to the stairs, in the very center of the platform. Here, there's little risk of getting pushed off onto the tracks when the gates open. You'll probably have to move when the train comes, or even before (assuming you survive) to avoid the monsters, but you'll get to that when it's time.
You can't really see the fight once it breaks out after Satoru Gojo arrives, but you still try to keep track of it as best as you can. You see when he hurls both monsters across the platform and you're not sure if it's muscle memory or what but you have to fight the urge to move to the side and watch. It's been a while, yes, but you've seen the fight countless times beforeâ it doesn't change. Satoru Gojo will give chase. He will rip the branches from the branch eyed monster's skull. He will use some kind of power to eviscerate them.
You don't need to watch, but there's something in you that wants to.
It doesn't make sense, you've seen it all before; if you're unlucky you'll see it all again.
The lights go out and people start screaming; Satoru Gojo is ending the life of that one monster. Soon enough he'll be back on the platform, in pursuit of the other. You think at that point it would be good to move, reposition yourself as far from the incoming train as possible.
When he rises from the tracks like a demon straight from hell, you realize it's the first time this loop that you've actually gotten a good look at him. You remind yourself, again, that this isn't the first time you've seen this man, this scene. You can't help but watch, but stare at Satoru Gojo as he stalks through the crowd in pursuit of his prey. His expression is an eerie sort of calm that's at odds with the acts of violence you've seen him commitâ his eyes an unnaturally bright blue.
He's a terrifying sort of beauty and you can't help but be captivated by him.
An eight car train is pulling in. Please wait behind the yellow line.
The sound of the announcement sends your heartbeat into a frenzy, snapping you out of your little trance. The train is coming and you need to get moving. As you dart to the edge of the platform, the thought occurs to you that even if you avoid the initial wave of monsters, it's likely you will inevitably be caught by them and killed. It wouldn't be impossible for Satoru Gojo to turn his attention to them instead of the two he's currently facing, but he's just one manâ can he truly defeat all those monsters?
You can see the train pulling in and you brace yourself, praying that it'll work out somehow.
The doors hiss open and the screaming starts again as the monsters come bursting out of the train, biting and mauling anyone they can get their hands on. Those who were lucky enough to not be at the front start to scramble away and the monsters give chase. Your body is taut, ready to try and dodge any that come your way.
Out of the corner of your eye you notice something moving through the air. A person? With blue hair? You take the risk to lookâ they're attacking Satoru Gojo. He tries to punch them but they fly away from him to dodgeâ disappearing into the crowd.
You hear a loud cracking sound over the cacophony of the crowd and your stomach twists; you know what that sound is. The roots above the atrium disintegrate and bodies from above start to rain down onto the platform.
And then, you're not sure what happensâ it's so quick that you only manage to see what looks like an explosion of blood surrounding Satoru Gojo. Corpses litter the ground around him and even from here you can tell he is shaken by the carnage.
The monsters have finally reached where you're standing, and you duck under one as it lunges at you. Although it's big and scary, you realize it's moving kind of slow. Right after it another one comes at you and you take a side step to avoid it; this monster is kind of slow too.
Maybe you can do this.
As soon as you think that a strange feeling courses through you. Every hair on your body feels like it's standing on edge and the voice in your head is telling you to look at Satoru Gojo. You don't understand why because you think he's the least of your worries right now, but you do it anyway.
He's in some sort of stance, one hand raised to his face, fingers bent in some kind of gesture. There's some sort of aura, oppressive and frightening emanating from his form.
Satoru Gojo is doing something.
You just can't tell what.
Itâs October 31, 2018â Halloween in Shibuya.
And you are utterly confused.
Barring your first few loops when you weren't fully aware of what was happening, you have very distinct memories of how each of your previous iterations of this night have goneâ of each and every one of your deaths. But for your last round, the last thing you remember was feeling the immense power radiating from Satoru Gojo's body, but that's it.
You do not remember dying.
In fact, you don't think you did.
And yet, here you are again, back at the start: it's 8:32PM and the monsters and strangely dressed man are standing on the subway tracks waiting for the arrival of Satoru Gojo.
You don't understand what's going on; you didn't die but you're still stuck in this damn loop. Up until now, your death has served as the trigger to restart the loop. It's not impossible that maybe you suffered a quick and painless death but you're almost certain that isn't the case.
Something else must have happened.
Something having to do with Satoru Gojo.
You have to find out what. If you don't, you won't know how to avoid it, and if you can't do that, then you really might spend an eternity stuck in this nightmare. And so you take great care to repeat the steps of your last round. You need to make sure to survive to the same point you made it to last time.
Miraculously, you do.
The moment you feel that sensation again, a prickling sort of feeling that envelops your entire body, your eyes are on Satoru Gojoâ trying to figure out what the hell he's doing. His eyes are crazed with a desperate kind of focus. You see his mouth moveâ he's saying something. A spell? A prayer? A curse?
You don't know.
You do know.
Your brain feels like it's going to explode.
Again.
Itâs October 31, 2018â Halloween in Shibuya.
Again.
You do not know how many times it's been the night of Halloween in Shibuya: you stopped counting around the hundredth loop. It feels like it's been a while since then. Or maybe it hasn't? You don't know any more.
What you do know is that this night ends up going one of two ways before you are forced to repeat it. Either you die, in some way, shape or form or something happens just after nine that forces you to reset. You still don't know what it is exactly; you only know that Satoru Gojo is responsible for it.
You do prefer it to dyingâ it's far less painful.
But if anything, you wish you could just die permanently and never have to repeat this night ever again.
Unfortunately, you know better.
The only good thing youâve noticed about all of this is that you really do seem to keep waking up earlier and earlier. The last time you checked, it was at around 8:30. It might take hundreds of thousands of loops, but eventually youâll certainly wake up early enough to avoid this damn entire mess.
But by the time that happens⌠will your sanity still be intact? Will you really be able to go back to a normal day to day life after living the equivalent of hundreds of years, repeating the same night over and over again? You donât even know how youâve managed to stay sane all this time and as much as you want to believe you could do itâŚ
There has to be a breaking point.
For both your mind and this time loop.
If youâre lucky, youâll reach the latter first.
Thereâs a dull ache in your head that feels foreign yet familiar. Your mind is foggy, all your thoughts hazy as you try to recall what the word for this feeling is.
Groggy.
It feels as if youâve woken up from a nap and you blink the sleepiness away from your eyes. When was the last time you took a nap? Itâs been a while⌠You think you maybe tried once or twice, but you were too nervous, too on edge. Awake or asleep, it didnât matter because, either way, you were doomed to repeat this nightmare.
As you think this, you realize that something is different.
Youâre used to how the start of each loop feels like waking up suddenly and abruptly and it becomes clear to you that you havenât looped. This is completely uncharted territory.
You need to find out whatâs going on.
The first thing you notice is that itâs quiet. Almost eerily so, especially when the last thing you remember was screaming and chaos. You glance around you and find that it looks like all the monsters from the train are dead, the ground littered in their bloodstains and corpses. There were so many of them, you donât know how someone could have wiped them out so quickly⌠Could it possibly have been Satoru Gojoâs doing?
More concerning than the complete eradication of the monsters is the fact that nearly everyone else on the platform is standing stock still, their mouths ajar with blank expressions on their faces. Itâs almost as if their souls have completely vacated their bodiesâŚ
Were you like that too before you woke up?
You hear voices, and your body immediately goes tense as you turn your head in their direction. A little ways ahead of you, you see a man dressed as a monk conversing with the blue haired person from earlier and before them isâ
Your heart nearly stops: itâs Satoru Gojo, restrained and on his knees.
Honestly, you canât make heads or tails of the conversation theyâre having; itâs more shounen battle manga nonsense. Satoru Gojo doesnât seem to be enjoying their conversation either, and he interrupts them, clearly annoyed.
âAre we gonna do this or what?â he asks. âThe view sucks and Iâm just kinda bored.â
âI wanted to enjoy this sight for a little bit longer, but you are right,â the monk says. âI wouldnât want anything to happenâ gate, close.â
When he says that, Satoru Gojoâs restraints move, the weirdly shaped cubes at the ends of them closing in around him, trapping him in a giant red cube. It starts to shrink until itâs small enough to fit in the monkâs hand.
You gulp and hope they donât notice that youâre awake. The fact that they havenât slaughtered the rest of the people standing around you is a good sign, but you donât want to find out what happens if they know youâre cognizant.
Itâs not hard to play the part of a living statue, especially when you compare it to everything else youâve had to suffer through on this night. You watch as the monkâs allies, the ones who had attacked everyone on the platform, wake up, but before they can do or say anything, the box holding Satoru Gojo slips through the monkâs fingers and makes a dent in the concrete. The look on the monkâs face makes it clear that itâs a problem he wasnât expecting.
You donât know a damn thing about Satoru Gojo, but you feel like this kind of thing is the norm for him.
The blue haired person suddenly looks in your direction and you nearly stop breathing. Have they noticed you? It takes everything in you to keep perfectly still, in hopes that maybe they didn't, that maybe theyâre looking at something else. They raise their arm and it extends, their hand acting like some kind of projectile. You almost shut your eyes and brace yourself for impact, but their hand flies upwards and hits something on the ceiling, destroying it.
Inwardly, you breathe a sigh of reliefâ youâre still safe.
For now.
You listen to their following conversation and while you still donât fully understand everything, itâs clear theyâre talking about what to do next since theyâve taken care of Satoru Gojo. Something having to do with someone named Yuji Itadori? The group seems split on what to do about him but itâs clear heâs their next target.
Eventually, everyone but the monk (you heard the blue haired person, who is apparently named Mahito, call him Geto?) runs off, probably to find this Yuji Itadori person. Once theyâre gone, Geto speaks and, at first, you think heâs talking to you, but it becomes clear heâs addressing someone else. âThose cursed spirits are actually smarter than the two of you.â
âGive him back!â a voice hidden among the crowd hisses. Your blood runs cold at the sound. You recognize it; itâs one of the high school girls from the upper floor.
âWe cooperated with you fully and kept dropping monkeys for you,â says another voice; it must be the other girl that was with her, the one who hung all those people.
âNow give us back Master Getoâs body like you promised!â
âDonât toy with Master Geto any further than you have!â
You blink in confusion. Isnât the monk named Geto? The way the girls are talking it sounds like theyâre talking about someone else⌠Is it possible that the body is âGetoâ but the person theyâre talking to is someone else possessing it? It sounds kind of crazy, but then again, so is every single thing youâve experienced tonight.
Your suspicions concerning this âGetoâ are confirmed only seconds later as he says, âNow begone, or is it your desire to be killed by this body?â
One of the girls vows her revenge and you hear shuffling somewhere else in the crowd as they scurry away. Now you think itâs just you and whoever it is thatâs puppeting Getoâs body. You see him plop down in front of the box (the prison realm, you think heâd called it) thatâs holding Satoru Gojo.
âYou can come out, you know,â he says after a while.
You freeze. The rest of the platform is completely silent. This time you think he might actually be talking to you.
âI know youâre there,â âGetoâ adds, his voice casual. âIf youâre insistent on hiding, you should know that Iâm not afraid of using whatever means necessary to smoke you out.â
Given everything his allies have done, thereâs no doubt in your mind that heâs serious. You were hoping to hide out among the crowd until he decided to leave, but it looks like you wonât be able to now.
Looks like this loop is a bust after all.
Your heart starts to race as you weave your way through the crowd. In every single one of your loops, you were always treated like a bit character, never noticed or singled out by any of the major players of the night. Although this is your first time encountering this âGetoâ itâs clear to you that heâs involved with everything thatâs happened here and honestly, you get the feeling he might actually be the mastermind behind the massacre.
That makes you even more nervous.
You come to a stop in the place where Satoru Gojo was once kneeling before he was put in that box. Now that youâre out in the open, âGetoâ looks you over with some sort of nonchalant curiosity.
âYouâreâŚâ he starts, sounding thoughtful, "not a sorcerer, are you?â
Sorcerer. You heard that term thrown around by him and his group a few times. Itâs what theyâve been referring to their enemies as. It probably wouldnât be smart to lie and say you are one; you get the feeling heâd see through your lie anyway. âIâm not.â
He hums. âHow interesting.â
â...what do you mean?â you ask before you can help yourself.
âItâs just you have an abnormally large amount of cursed energy for a non-sorcerer,â he explains. âThough, I suppose that all just sounds like gibberish to you."
You nod and look down at the box lodged in the floor. It has eyes, big creepy looking eyes. "...are you going to do the same thing to me as you did to that man?"
He laughs, "...fortunately for you, the prison realm only holds one person at a time and I need him sealed away more than you."
"...does that mean you're going to leave him in there forever?"
"If I'm feeling nice, I might unseal him in a hundred years or so."
One hundred years? At this point, you've probably lived roughly that amount of time through your loops alone, but for Satoru Gojo⌠"Won't he die first?"
"Only if he decides to," 'Geto' says, looking completely and wholly unbothered. "Time doesn't doesn't flow in the box, so when I unseal him, he'll be the same as he was just now. Physically anyway. Who knows how deteriorated his mind will be after all that."
Time doesn't flow in the box.
The words echo in your mind over and over. Time doesn't flow in the box. In other words, that means time has stopped in the box, and if that's the case thenâ
"Anyway, rather than worry about him, shouldn't you be more worried about yourself?"
You look at 'Geto' and he's smiling at you, it's friendly, but ominous. There's no doubt what is going to happen next, though you had already resigned yourself to this iteration being a bust; it was only a matter of time.
Time doesn't flow in the box.
"I was thinking I might keep you around, even if you arenât a sorcerer, your wealth of cursed energy would serve my plans well," he muses. "But⌠it would be too much trouble trying to teach you how to use it in time."
As he talks, you realize this is probably the first time your death is intentionalâ every other death you've suffered has just been a byproduct of the ongoing slaughter. You were just another casualty, a victim, never a target.
You're scared.
Even though you know that once he kills you, once you die, you'll just loop back to around 8:30 again. You'll be on the platform again. And you'll play out some sequence of events before you eventually die again. And again and again.
Time doesn't flow in the box.
"I'll be nice, though," 'Geto' says, raising a hand and another monster appears out of nowhere. You donât even bother trying to figure out from where. It doesnât matter, especially since this monster will surely be the one to end your life. "I'll make it painless."
"...I appreciate it," you say and close your eyes hoping that he's not lying about it.
Time doesn't flow in the box.
He didn't lie.
You die again.
Itâs October 31, 2018â Halloween in Shibuya.
And you're trapped.
You don't know how and you don't know why, but you are stuck in a time loopâ forced to suffer through the horrific events of the night before you die and begin it all again. It's been a long time since you stopped counting how many loops you've gone through, but if you had to guess, it's probably somewhere in the hundreds now.
You are so very tired.
But it doesn't stop. It won't stop no matter what you seem to do. You are stuck. You are trapped. You are doomed.
âTime doesn't flow in the box.â
Ever since that first loop where you heard whoever is possessing Geto's body say that, the words have been stuck in your head, playing on loop.
You finally realize why.
âTime doesn't flow in the box.â
It's 8:25PM when you wake up; that should be plenty of time.
You need to find Satoru Gojo.
After hundreds of loops you've come to a singular conclusion: you need to prevent him being sealed in the prison realm. You've witnessed it enough to know that you won't be able to do it alone; you'll need his cooperation.
You rush upstairs as fast as you can, ignoring the shiver that runs down your spine as you step onto the stairwell. According to your previous loops, Satoru Gojo arrives on the subway tracks at 8:40PM. With how crowded the upper floor is, you donât know if youâll have the time to intercept him and talk to him, but if you can at least figure out where to find him, then you can try and talk to him during a subsequent loop.
When you reach the fourth basement floor, however, you donât know where you should even start. Heâs pretty tall so you think you could spot him in the crowd, but⌠there are still so many people. It occurs to you that maybe it would be better to try and look from a higher vantage point so you head to the stairs that lead up to the third basement floor. You check your phone again. Itâs 8:35PM; you need to hurry.
Luckily for you, you find him very easily on the third basement floor.
The only problem is that heâs in a hard to reach spotâ squatting above a sign hanging over the crowd.
You check your phone again. Itâs 8:38PM and heâs starting to move, presumably to meet with those waiting for him on the subway tracks. Itâs good that you found him, but thereâs no doubt about it.
Youâre going to need more time.
The moment you wake up, you immediately bolt toward the stairs. It's taken many, many more loops, but you've finally brought the time you wake down to around 8:15. You're still not sure if it's enough time, but there's only one way to find out.
You barrel your way up to the next floor and zig zag through the crowd to get to the next flight of stairs. By the time you get to your destination, you're completely out of breath, your chest heaving as your lungs clamor for air. Youâve done this so many times, yet your body acts like itâs always the first. It sucks, but thereâs nothing you can do about it. You slow to a brisk pace to catch your breath and check the time. Itâs 8:27â a new record. Hopefully itâll be enough.
The goal is to catch Satoru Gojo before he moves to his lookout point above the crowd. While not impossible, it would be difficult for you to follow him there. You eye the safety barricade that blocks off the area where heâll be moving in just a few minutes warily.
Yes, getting over there would be extremely difficult.
You donât want to think about it right now; youâll deal with it when the time comes.
Especially since Satoru Gojo has now entered your field of vision.
Your heart starts to race at the sight of him and it feels like itâs beating a million times a second. There isnât a lot of time. You need to talk to him, but your legs only wobble, your feet planted firmly to the ground. This is not good. You need to move. You need to move.
Finally, after what feels like both an instant and an eternity, your feet finally budge, propelling you in Satoru Gojoâs direction. The beating of your heart only grows louder as you make your way toward him, mingling with the single thought thatâs echoing throughout your mind right now: will he even hear you out?
You need to make him.
âExcuse me!â The words nearly come out in a stutter as you realize that you are actually talking to Satoru Gojo. You have watched this man at a distance for so long that it almost felt like he wasnât real, like he was just another fixture in this nightmare that youâve been living for far too long. And yet, here he is, right in front of you, in the flesh.
And his attention is on you.
All sound stops: the crowd around you, the thoughts in your head, the beat of your heart. Even though you cannot see them through that blindfold of his, you know that Satoru Gojoâs eyes are on you and the thought of that, the knowledge of it is actually a little overwhelming. Your mouth is dry and suddenly you donât know what to say, but you need to say something. You need to say something before he thinks maybe you bumped into him by accident and just walks away without a word.
âI need to talk to you!â The words just burst out from your mouth and something about it is just absolutely embarrassing. Youâre not sure if it's desperation or the fact that you havenât really talked to anyone other than the existence occupying Suguru Getoâs body in nearly forever.
Satoru Gojoâs lips slowly start to form a smile, âOh, yeah?â
The sound of his voice makes your mind go blank. Thereâs something different about it right now; more playful, amused even. Maybe itâs because heâs talking to you, a harmless human being and not a monster trying to kill him. Itâs almost kind of jarring, but you know, with certainty, what Satoru Gojoâs voice sounds like. And the fact that heâs actually talking to you right now has you kind of excited. You nod, doing your best to not show how thrilled you are that heâs not ignoring you.
He hums thoughtfully, âSorry⌠but unfortunately I kind of have some business to attend to right now.â
âIââ You start to say that you know that heâs headed down to the platform below to fight withâŚChoso and Jogo, you think their names areâ you donât know the name of the monster with the branches for eyes. âItâsâ itâs really important!â
Gojo tilts his head a little, clearly thinking. You should probably say something else, something to try and convince him to stay a little longer and hear you out, but your mind is both full and blank. Where do you start? From the beginning? Or do you start with what is most important? Maybe you should say what you think will get his attention. Youâre not sure, and you realize you really should have thought about this earlier because youâre running out of time right now.
â...mind handing me your phone?â
You stare at Gojo, completely and wholly confused, but he just holds out his hand expectantly. When you donât move, he wiggles his fingers a little, a silent gesture telling you to hurry it up. Without thinking, you reach into your bag and unlock your phone before handing it to him.
âKind of sucks that cell service isnât working right now,â he remarks as he types something into your phone before handing it back. âBut! Here's my number.â
You look down at your phone and, sure enough, Satoru Gojo has added himself as one of your contacts. Heâs even added a little star to the end of his name. Thatâs⌠a little unexpected. Why his number though?
âAre you⌠hitting on me?â you mutter in your confusion.
He laughs, âWell, you said you had something really important to talk to me about, right? So just give me a call when you get home or some time tomorrow and we can talk then!â
Youâre not going to make it home, or even to tomorrow, and neither will Satoru Gojo. As you start to tell him this, he steps past you. Desperate, you try to grab him, but somehow, for some reason, you canât. You remember he did this with Jogo and the other monster, made himself untouchable.
This is not good.
He gives you a little wave, cheery as he says, âIâll talk to you later!â
You watch, helpless as he hops over the barricade beyond your reach.
Gripping your phone tightly, you take a deep breath. It's fine, it's not like you didnât expect things to go well anyway.
You'll just have to try again.
Every time youâve tried to solicit help from Satoru Gojo, it has gone the same way. He just wonât give you the time of day, and in some ways you canât blame him; heâs clearly here to deal with the monsters down on the platform. Youâre fairly certain that he probably thinks that whatever is going on with you is a much lesser issue in comparison.
Plus, it probably doesnât help that in the times that youâve approached him, you havenât been able to articulate yourself particularly well. Once you start talking to him, you just get hit with something akin to stage fright and the connection between your mind and your mouth just stops working. Itâs gotten better with each attempt, butâŚ
Itâs just so frustrating.
It is interesting that Gojo has given you his number every time, star symbol and all. Youâre not sure what kind of person you were expecting him to be, but after witnessing him literally and viciously rip monsters apart, youâd figured heâd be a little more somber. However, in the fragmented conversations youâve had with him heâs come off as far more friendly and playful than you would have thought. Is he the type of person to get more serious when the situation calls for it? You canât help but wonder, but ultimately, it doesnât really matter.
What really matters is that youâre able to convince him to help you.
You have to convince him.
âExcuse me!â you say, stepping in Satoru Gojoâs path. You donât stutter this time, and your voice is more sure. This is good.
âYes?â
His head turns in your direction and you gulp. Gojoâs gaze, despite that blindfold of his, still feels just as overwhelming as it did the very first time you approached him. You have no doubt that heâs sizing you up, but thereâs just something about it that makes you feel like youâre being picked apart.
You take a deep breath and step closer to him, hoping your voice sounds firm enough as you say, âI need your help. Iâm trapped.â
He chuckles a little, âI know, but yours truly is on his way to go beat up the bad guys keeping you all trapped here, so soon enough youâll be all free to go on your merry little way.â
Right. You were so caught up in your own plight that you nearly forgot that technically youâre not the only one âtrapped.â Satoru Gojo obviously knows that everyone else is confined to this station, but you doubt he knows that youâre confined to this night alone.
âThatâs not what I mean!â you sputter.
âThen what do you mean?â Gojo asks. Should you tell him that you mean that youâre trapped in a time loop? Youâre honestly not sureâ in the movies and manga youâve read about time travel, revealing that sort of thing risks creating a time paradox which seems to be a bad thing. If you have to tell him, you will, butâ âOh, I get it.â
You stare, bewildered. Did you maybe just spew all of that aloud?
Gojo gives you a mischievous smile. âYouâre hitting on me, arenât you?â
âNo!â The word comes flying out of your mouth. You canât deny heâs attractiveâ youâve thought it all this time, but that is not whatâs happening here.
âNo need to be embarrassed,â he continues, ignoring you. âI totally get it, so if you want, Iâd be happy to give you my number!â
Again? Youâve received Satoru Gojoâs contact details in every loop youâve talked to him, star symbol and allâ you even have his number memorized. Thereâs something kind of odd about how he keeps giving you his number. Part of you wonders if heâs got some sort of ulterior motive, but you havenât thought too deeply about it. There are way more important things going on.
âI donât need your phone number,â you say. âI need to talk.â
Your response seems to give Gojo pause. Did you somehow manage to get through to him? No way. Your suspicions are all but confirmed when he gives you that familiar apologetic smile.
âLike, I said, Iâm sort of in the middle of something, butâŚâ Gojo reaches into his pockets and rummages around until one hand fishes out a folded up piece of paper. The other hand keeps digging around in his pocket and when Gojo seems to give up on whatever heâs looking for, he turns his attention back to you. âGot a pen?â
What?
Gojo tilts his head. âWell?â
âI do, butâŚâ You trail off, unsure why heâs asking.
He holds out his hand waiting for you to just hand him the pen. You still donât get it, but you reach into your bagâs front pocket and pull out the pen and hand it to him. Gojo looks almost like an excited child when he takes it from you, quickly scribbling something onto his paper before shoving it and your pen back into your hand.
You look at the paper; it looks like a receipt. For a disturbing amount of mochi that Gojo bought earlier today. The amount of money he spent is almost sickening; way too much to be paying for mochi. More importantly, you notice something juxtaposed over the receiptâs print.
Itâs Satoru Gojoâs name and number.
He even drew a little star next to his name.
âIf you change your mind later, just give me a call!â he tells you cheerily. âI promise Iâll make it worth your while!â
You gawk at him. He cannot be serious. You literally just told him that you didnât need it and yet he still gave it to you. He must want you to contact him later, but you canât even begin to understand why. It canât have been something you said or did, right? Unless, heâs actuallyâ
âLater!â Gojoâs voice cuts through your thoughts and you notice him walking off with a wave.
You canât let him get away.
Again.
You crush the receipt in your hand and rush after him. Despite the crowd, Gojo seems to move through the people with ease and it almost seems like they are yielding to him naturally. Itâs good for you. Makes him easier to chase.
âWait!â you yell, but Gojo doesnât even look back. Bastard. Your muscles strain as you try to run faster. You know you wonât be able to grab him if you get to him, but there has to still be something you can do to stop him. Circle around him? Cut him off before heâ
Satoru Gojo reaches the barricade.
âWait!â you yell again. âSatoru Gojo, wait!â
He does not even acknowledge you.
Youâre almost there though. Almost. If you reach out your hand, then maybe, maybe you can grab him. Something in your head tells you that itâs useless; youâve never been able to touch him. But, you donât care, you donât care because you have to try. You stretch out your hand, desperate and hoping, but just as you do, Gojo effortlessly jumps over the barricade, moving to survey the crowd.
Due to your momentum, you almost collide into the barricade, but you manage to stop yourself. You stare at Satoru Gojo through the glass. He watches the crowd for at most three minutes. Is this just another bust? Is there really nothing you can do? There must be a way you can get his attention. Is it possible to climb over the barricade? No, itâs too high. Thereâs nothing you can grasp onto or use as footing either.
This fucking sucks.
Another minute or two and Gojo will be on the move again, and there will be no way you can follow, no way you can get his attention. You press your hands against the glass, pushing against it. Naturally, it doesnât budge. Why would it? If only you could get it out of the way. If only you could break it. This stupid barricade is the only thing between you and Satoru Gojo and thereâs no way you can climb it, but if only you could break it.
If only you could fucking break it.
Suddenly, the glass feels warm. Satoru Gojoâs image starts to look a little distorted as the warmth beneath your fingers grows. Something is happening. The glass starts to vibrate and shake. Violently. The tremors grow stronger and stronger. You should stop. You should back away.
You donât.
The barricade starts to crack and fracture and soon the sound of shattering glass resounds throughout the entire room. Everyone starts screaming. No one knows whatâs going onâ not even you. But you donât care. Itâs gone. The barricade is gone.
You take a step forward, toward Satoru Gojo. Heâs on a beam thatâs about a two meter drop from where youâre standing. Thatâs fine. Thatâs okay. You can make it. You have to. Without a second thought, you jumpâ
And you land on the beam. You look up and Satoru Gojoâs attention is back on you. Heâs finally, finally turned toward you, face twisted into an expression you canât decipher or even comprehend, butâ
Somethingâs wrong; your world is turning on its axis, butâ
Satoru Gojo is looking at you, andâ
Up is very quickly becoming down, andâ
Satoru Gojo is coming closer, butâ
Youâre slippingâ
But heâs right there, andâ
Youâre falling, butâ
Heâs trying to catch you, butâ
Itâs too late. Itâs too late.
The last thing you think you feelâ
âis Satoru Gojoâs arms around you.
Itâs October 31, 2018â Halloween in Shibuya.
And you are causing a commotion.
âShit! Fuck!â you curse loudly. The people near you start to shift away but you barely notice; you donât really care.
You were so close, so fucking close and yet⌠yet here you are again. Itâs quarter past eight and you are back on the goddamn platform. You donât know what happened; you remember falling and thinking you were going to die, but you are absolutely certain that, once again, this time, you didnât die.
Is Satoru Gojo at fault again? Did he do something? Like he did all those other times you looped without dying? When you think about it more, you donât think so. You donât know what happened; all you know is that you tried to get to him, but you slipped.
And he caught you, you definitely remember that.
You still donât understand why you looped, but thereâs not much you can do about it now; itâs not like you can go back anymore. It just sucks, because you think he might have actually listened if youâd talked to him.
Or he would have come after you for⌠whatever happened with the barricade. It could have been taken as an attack on the crowd⌠But if he thought you were doing that, then why would he catch you?
You donât know.
All you know is that you have to try again.
The only problem is that you donât know how you managed to shatter the barricade. You think about it as you make your way up to where youâll find Satoru Gojo. There is the possibility that it wasnât you and something else happened to it instead, but that feels way too coincidental. It had to be you. Thatâs the only thing that makes sense. You just canât figure out how you did it outside of wanting, wishing, praying for the barricade to break. Itâs not like you have supernatural powers like Satoru Gojo and his enemies.
Despite your mind being completely and wholly occupied by trying to figure out how in the world you managed to break through that barricade, you still manage to make it to the second basement floor of Shibuya Hikarie by 8:25PMâ a brand new record. Satoru Gojo doesnât show up until around 8:34PM, so that gives you almost ten minutes to try and figure out what you need to do to try and replicate shattering the glass barricade again.
Exceptâ
Except Satoru Gojo is already here.
The thought that maybe youâre mistaken flashes in your mind before itâs quickly dismissed; thereâs no way youâd mistake anyone else for him. There is absolutely no denying it: that is Satoru Gojo. Bewildered, you double check the time on your phone. Maybe you misread it and youâre actually late but sure enough you read it rightâ Satoru Gojo is here early.
What the hell is going on?
Of the thousands of times you have experienced this night, this hell, this sort of thing has never happened before. Everything happens at a specific time, as if adhering to an unseen schedule. Itâs likely that what happened in your last iteration did delay Satoru Gojoâs arrival onto the platform, but other than that there has never been a deviation to the time table.
And yet, here Satoru Gojo is, nine minutes early now.
You realize that thatâs not the only thing thatâs strange: heâs not moving. In previous rounds, when you encounter Gojo here, heâs walking to the lookout spot beyond the barricade. But, right now, heâs just standing there, hands stuffed in the pockets of his jacket. It almost looks like he's waiting for something.
Or someone.
This unexpected turn of events has you rooted to the spot. Youâre not sure what you should do. No. This shouldnât change anything. You need to talk to him. As concerning as a change like this is, the extra time it gives you should be a good thing. Despite knowing that, your feet are still firmly planted to the ground.
The crowd shifts and you see Satoru Gojo start to move. Toward the barricade? No. Heâs not heading in his usual direction, rather heâsâ
You stop breathing.
Heâs headed toward you.
All sound stops: the crowd around you, the thoughts in your head, the beat of your heart. Even though you cannot see them through that blindfold of his, you know that Satoru Gojoâs eyes are on you and the thought of that, the knowledge of it is absolutely mind numbing.
He comes to a stop before you, lips curled up to form an amused sort of smile as he says, âSoooo, you needed to talk to me?â
You try to answer but no words come out of your mouth. Are you dreaming? You have to be, right? There's no way that this is actually happening. Could it be that, after thousands of loops, youâve finally lost it? Your mind shattering along with the glass of the barricade at the end of the last one?
Gojo tilts his head, indicating that he's still waiting for an answer. When you open your mouth, at first, nothing comes out, the words stuck in your throat. You force them out, your voice cracking, â...how did you know?â
He smiles, looking almost mischievous as he reaches up and lightly taps the side of his head. âI remembered, of course!â
All you can do is stare at Satoru Gojo. He remembered? How is that possible? From his perspective, this is the first time youâve met and while it shouldnât be possible for him to remember thereâs something in your mind thatâs keeping you from completely dismissing the possibility.
Gojo laughs, âI take it from the look on your face that youâre not used to this sort of thing happening. Is this the first time?â
âNo.â The fact that the word is out of your mouth before you can even really think about it surprises you and you really have to think. Your face scrunches together as you try to remember. Is this really not the first time? Then, the memories assault you, overlapping as they replay simultaneously in your headâ a woman in a yellow and white magical girl costumeâ begging you for help as she burns to deathâ smiling as she tells you she made her costume herself. â...it happened just once a long time ago.â
ââA long time ago,â huh. Sounds like you've been at this for a while now.â
â...unfortunately.â
Gojo hums. âSo when you said you didnât need my phone numberâŚâ
âYouâd already given it to me a few times,â you say, figuring thatâs where this conversation is going.
âReally now?â
Does he not believe you? Or is he just being an ass? Youâre not sure, but since you had taken the liberty of memorizing Satoru Gojoâs phone number you recite it back to him to prove your point.
Just when you think you may have stunned Gojo into silence he starts to laugh, obviously finding something funny about the fact that you know his cell phone number. âSeems like you've got quite the fascinating technique there.â
Technique? What is he talking about? Your confusion must be plain on your face because he adds, elaborating, âThe time travel.â
You continue to stare at him. You don't think you'd consider what you've been going through time travel, because traveling implies moving from point A to point B, but you've been stuck walking in circles at point A for a long time. What really gets you is⌠âWhat do you mean by âtechnique?ââ
âYou mean you donâtâ oh. I get it; no wonder youâre trapped.â
That does not answer your question in the slightest. âCan you please explain what you're talking about? What do you mean by âtechnique?ââ
âRight, right⌠So basically, a technique is like a special sort of power,â he finally explains. âLike I said, your technique seems to be a kind of time travel. Whenever you activate it, your mind is sent back in time.â
What he's saying makes sense, but⌠âHow come you were sent back too?â
He laughs again. âIsn't it obvious? Think back to beforeâ do you remember that I caught you as you were falling?â
You nod slowly. The memory of his arms around you is almost embarrassingly vivid. â...is it because we were touching?â
âDing, ding, ding! That's correct! Anyone you happen to be touching when you activate your technique gets affected by it too!â
Something about his tone annoys you, but you try to ignore it. He could have just told you rather than make you guess. âHow do you know that for sure?â
âWell,â he continues. âYouâve done your little time loop a bunch of times, right? If your technique affected everyone, or even a few people in a select range you would have noticed for sure. And if it affected only just you then we wouldnât be having this conversation right now, now would we?â
When you think about it, you do think that the woman in the magical girl costume might have bumped into you before the loop where she remembered.
âThatâs honestly just conjecture, but I've got pretty good eyes, so Iâm hardly ever wrong.â
Gojo gives you a grin and while you do think that his reasoning is sound enough his confidence is a little grating. More than that, though, youâre glad that this conversation is actually going really well.
âEither way,â he says thoughtfully. âIt doesnât look like you can control your technique. Usually a personâs technique manifests when theyâre a kid, but you seem to be a special case⌠in fact, I bet your technique activated for the very first time tonightâ probably under some pretty extreme circumstances, too.â
â...dying counts as an âextreme circumstance,â right?â
âOh, absolutely. Or legitimately thinking that youâre gonna die, but it seems like your body has been unconsciously activating your technique as a sort of defense mechanism. Which is why youâre trapped.â
âSo, if I could control it Iâd be able to make it out of this time loop.â
âYeah, but in this case it probably wouldnât end very well for you,â he points out with a chuckle. âItâs not like you actually want to die, right? I mean, if you did, then your technique wouldnât even activate in the first place.â
You donât; what you want is for this night to finally end. To be free from the endless cycle of dying over and over again and again. You donât think death is quite the answer; even if you were to learn how to control this supposed technique of yours, thereâs no guarantee that you would just unconsciously activate it when the grim reaper comes knocking on your door. No, the answer isâŚ
âAnyway!â Gojoâs cheery voice cuts through your thoughts. âI highly doubt that youâre the type that makes a habit of jumping off ledges for the funsies, so the fact that youâve been dying tells me that some pretty gruesome stuff is about to go down, so, tell me what happens tonight.â
The sudden drop of his voice sends a shiver running down your spine. If it werenât for the fact that youâve seen how serious Gojo can get, the sudden shift in demeanor would probably freak you out a bit, but it doesnât. This is the Satoru Gojo youâre familiar with.
You do have one concern though. âThat⌠wonât create a time paradox or anything, will it?â
âNah,â Gojo shrugs. âYou wouldnât cause one with the way your technique works, besides, if youâve only been going back at most an hour or two in time itâs hard to believe youâd be making a really big impact⌠unless you really believe in the butterfly effect.â
Youâre still not quite sure.
âTrust me, itâll be fine.â
His voice sounds strange. Gentle. Kind. It's the most soothing thing you've heard in a long time and it makes you want to believe him.
â...okay.â
Anxiety is still gripping at you, but you try to dispel it, taking a deep breath before beginning your explanation. For the sake of brevity, itâs probably best that youâre as concise as possible. There isnât much need to really get into the nitty gritty of things unless he asks specifically.
Naturally, you begin with his arrival onto the platform and how soon after a fight breaks out and how the crowd is unfortunate enough to be involved. Gojoâs expression is passive for the most part, but he does crack the faintest hint of a smile when you mention how he manages to eviscerate one of the monsters.
It disappears once you tell him about the arrival of the train. Between the dozens upon dozens of people being dropped onto the platform by those two high school girls and the hoard of monsters disembarking from the train, everything devolves into pandemonium.
âWait,â Gojo holds a hand up and you pause. This is his first interruption since you started recounting the nightâs events for him. âEveryone is able to see the monsters?â
You stare at him. What a weird question. â...yeah?â
His mouth twists and it looks like heâs thinking about something. You canât even begin to imagine what. Finally, he comments, âMakes sense.â
It does not, but you donât ask him to elaborate. Surely if it was important he would have just done so.
âAnyway, in the middle of all that, you⌠you do something.â Your brows bunch together as you remember the stance Gojo took, the crazed and desperate look in his eyes, the feeling of your head about to explode. âI donât know how to describe it. At first, it would just force me to⌠activate my technique, I guess. But now, it just knocks me out for a few minutes.â
Gojo frowns and he rubs at his chin, obviously thinking about what youâve said. Eventually, he raises a hand and bends his fingers into a familiar gesture. Itâs the one that preludes whatever he does on the platform. âDo I do this?â
âYeah.â
He hums. âInteresting.â
You wait to see if heâll explain. He doesnât. Great. Even if he doesnât think you need to know, it certainly would be nice to. Itâs annoying otherwise, but you ignore the feeling and continue. âI canât tell you what happens when Iâm knocked out, but when I come to everyone is basically a zombie and all the monsters from the train are gone. I think you kill them.â
âI probably do,â he says casually. âBut what about Volcano Head?â
â...you don'tâŚget a chance to kill him,â you say slowly. Gojo tilts his head, waiting for you to elaborate, but you hesitate. You have to tell him, you know you do, butâŚ
You have seen the interaction so many times and though you don't know the exact nature of the relationship between them, you can tell that seeing Suguru Geto (or rather seeing his body) shook Satoru Gojo to his very core.
There's no doubt in your mind that he will not take this news well.
âCome on now,â Gojo's tone is light-hearted, unaware. âDon't keep me in suspense here.â
It's as if you're withholding the punchline to a joke. In a way, you suppose you are, but you don't think he's going to find it funny.
You take a deep breath. You need to tell him. The worst thing that could happen is that he doesn't believe you, but if that's the case⌠you'll probably just end up repeating this all again until you find a loop where he does.
Having made it this far, you'd like to avoid all that.
âBefore you can get Volcano Head you get restrained by something called the prison realm,â you say slowly, âby someone calling themselves⌠Suguru Geto.â
The second the name leaves your mouth, there is a clear and obvious shift in the air. Gone is Gojoâs laid-back and frivolous demeanor, replaced with something more somber and almost frightening. The tension grows more and more palpable to the point that you think it might almost choke you.
You almost wish that it would.
âYou canât be serious,â Gojo finally says, once your words have fully sunk in.
âIââ You start to speak, but come to an abrupt stop when you see him shove his hand into his pocket to yank out his phone of all things.
The both of you know full well that thereâs no reception here, but you donât think that heâs planning on making any calls. Gojo scrolls and scrolls on his phone before he stops and shoves the screen in your face. It shows a picture of three peopleâ a teenage girl with a cigarette in her mouth, a younger, happier version of Gojo sporting a pair of round sunglasses andâ
âWhen you say âGetoâ is this who youâre referring to?â Gojo demands, using his other hand to point at the third person in the frameâ a handsome young man with long dark hair pulled up into a bun.
âYes, butââ
âThatâs impossible. It canât be him,â Gojo interrupts, his voice firm, cold even. âHeâs dead.â
Thereâs a note of finality in his words that is definitely meant to leave no room for argument. It doesnât stop you, though. Instead, you glare at Gojoâs stupid blindfold and say, â...being dead doesnât mean a damn thing! Iâve died hundreds of times and yet Iâm still fucking here, butââ
âYour situation is different,â he interjects, the temperature of his tone hiking up, his words like heated hissing. âI killed him almost a year ago. There's no wayââ
âYou didn't get rid of the body properly!â You cut him off, raising your voice in hopes that he'll take even just a second to stop and listen. It seems to work and you add something you remember âGetoâ saying. âYou should have had Shoko Ieiri get rid of it, but you didnât and now some⌠some kind of gross brain thing is possessing the corpse!â
The air between you both is silent as the grave. Though you can't see it, you can feel the weight of his gaze pressing down on you. Heâs definitely having second thoughts about everything youâve said so far. Thereâs a chance he might even think youâre his enemy now. You stare him down though, refusing to look away. Youâve made it this far, you canâtâ you wonât back down.
â...youâre not lying, are you.â Gojoâs words are more of a statement than a question. Thereâs no doubt in your mind that he knows the answer, and yet heâs still asking. You wonder if maybe heâs clinging onto some vain hope that maybe, just maybe this all a sick, cruel joke thatâs gone way too far.
âIâm not.â
Gojo holds your gaze for a second longer before he lets out a curse. âFuck!â
â...Iâm sorry,â you say quietly, mostly because it feels like the most correct thing to say at this moment. You donât know the whole story, but it seems like they were close. If so, then it must have hurt Gojo a lot to have killed him, and must hurt even more to know that someone is desecrating the body. You hate that you, a complete and utter stranger, happened to be the person to tell him, butâŚ
It had to be done, for the sake of getting past this unending night, it had to be done.
Gojo runs a hand through his hair and lets out a ragged sigh. âOkay. What happens after that?â
You give him a rundown of what follows; he gets sealed, the monsters wake up and all but âGetoâ leave in search of their next target. When you mention the high school girls demanding the brain give Getoâs body back, Gojo snorts loudly.
âFat chance of that,â he says derisively.
You nod in agreement. It was clear to you that the brain parasite has no intent on giving it up any time soon. âAfter they leave, he⌠talks to me.â
âProbably couldn't ignore all that cursed energy you have,â Gojo remarks offhandedly.
You stare at him, expression twisted in a way that shows that you have absolutely no clue what that means. It should be fine for you to ask this one question; it actually concerns you after all. âWhat does that even mean?â
âExactly what it sounds like, though⌠probably doesn't make much sense to you, does it?â
You give him a pointed glare and all Gojo does is laugh.
âJust think of it like having a lot of MP.â
â...Like in a video game?â
âExactly!â Then, Gojo tilts his head, clearly thinking. You don't bother asking; you don't feel like he'll explain.
âHe does ask me if I'm a sorcerer, whatever that is. Is that why?â
âProbably. Ordinary people don't have even a fraction of the energy you're packing.â
âOrdinary peopleâ he says as if youâre not an ordinary person who got caught up in all this supernatural sorcery bullshit. Or at least you were, but if the time loops are really a product of your own doingâŚ
âDoes he kill you when you answer?â Gojo asks to get the conversation back on track.
âNot right away. What happens next kind of varies,â you answer. âHe usually lets me have a question or two before he kills me; I've asked him a couple different things.â
âReally taking advantage, arenât you?â Gojo says and you're not sure what to make of his tone. Is he mocking you or is he easing back into that laid-back persona of his?
âIf Iâm doomed to repeat the same situation over and over, I might as well make the most of it,â you respond flatly.
âYou know, your technique kind of reminds me of save scumming.â
Heâs definitely gone back to acting almost completely unseriousâ all signs of his earlier agitation are nearly gone.
âSo what did you learn?â
âWell, the prison realm only holds one occupant. Once theyâre sealed, time stops for them and the only way out is if the bearer unseals them or if they choose to kill themselves.â
âI see⌠And what about our body jacker?â
âHe didnât go into detail but he said something about⌠striving toward the evolution of mankind?â You frown a little at the memory. He didnât explain further because he said that you wouldnât understand.
âHuh. Interesting. Wonder how he was gonna go about doing that.â
âI don't know, but I can't imagine you'd like it since he goes out of his way to seal you into that box,â you say. âSaid youâd get in the way because youâre too strong.â
Gojo shrugs his shoulders and grins a little. Cocky. âWell, I am the strongest sorcerer around, you know.â
You would think him overconfident if you hadn't seen the magnitude of his strength first hand.
âAnyway, that's as far as I ever go. When he's decided heâs done talking to me, he kills me and I loop back.â
âSo, in short, what you want help with is getting past that point, right?â
âMore or less.â
âAnd all I have to do is avoid getting caught by the prison realm?â
You nod.
âWhatâs it look like?â he asks. âA big cage with a bunch of metal bars?â
Now that you think about it, you havenât woken up early enough to see it before it traps him, but you canât imagine it looks that much different. âNo.. Itâs a small box with eyes⌠It gets big enough to fit you in it, though.â
âHuh.â He stretches his arms out above his head as if heâs trying to emphasize how large he actually is and shoots you a grin. âShould be easy enough then. I bet our body snatcher used the shock of seeing Suguru to trap me but since I'll see it coming, avoiding it'll be a piece of cake.â
Gojo makes it sound so easy, and maybe it really is as simple as that, but you can't help but be worried still.
âDon't tell me you don't think I can do it,â he says, tilting his head.
âIt's not that,â you admit. âI'm just concerned I might die before we can get to that point.â
Truthfully, since you know that will just result in another loop you're less concerned with dying itself and more worried about losing the progress you've made in convincing Gojo to help you. Even though it's been clearly proven you can loop him as well, there's no guarantee you'll be able to make the physical contact needed to do it upon death.
âYou've made it pretty far on your own, though, right?â
âYeah, but⌠Iâve messed up plenty of times.â More than you can even count. âThere's also the possibility that taking the time to talk to you might have thrown things out of whack.â
Speaking of time, you check your phone. It's 8:39PM. You curse.
Gojo leans over to check your phone. âLet me guess, I'm supposed to be somewhere right now.â
âYeah, this is when youâre descending down onto the platform.â
âYou know where I am down to the exact minute?â He asks and you tilt your head back and forth a little. Itâs not exact per se, but itâs close enough. Gojo chuckles a little. âMan, I didnât realize that you were actually that into me.â
That earns Gojo a glare from you, but he just laughs it off. âI doubt being a few minutes late is going to make a big difference.â
You certainly hope so.
âDon't worry,â Gojo says and you notice he's using that tone from earlier. âYou won't die.â
Itâs hard to argue with him when he uses such a reassuring sounding voice and yet, you still open your mouth to tryâ to voice your doubts, but what he says next silences you before you even can.
âI'll protect you.â
You think your heart stops beating in your chest and your words dissolve in your throat.
He grins at you. âDid you fall in love with me just now?â
That catches you a little off guard. You're willing to admit he's hot, but surely he must be joking. âHow could you even think of something like that at a time like this?â
Gojo laughs again. âWell, since someone is so worried about their time table being all messed up, I better head down there; canât keep Volcano Head and friends waiting, right?â
You blink. Is that it? âWait, shouldnât we make a plan or something?â
âIsnât the plan for me to not get caught in the prison realm?â
Yes, but⌠âBut what about me? Is there anything I can do?â
Gojo stares at you, or at least you think he does. â...I donât know, is there?â
Youâve seen the encounter between Satoru Gojo and those monsters so many times and you try to picture a version of it where you intervene and⌠all you can see is yourself getting in his way. Youâre no fighter, no⌠sorcerer, or whatever he is, youâre just some ordinary person that was unfortunate enough to get all caught up in this mess. The most you can probably do is kick the prison realm out of the way when the time comes, but otherwise⌠â...no, I guess not.â
His expression turns sympathetic. âYouâve done plenty by telling me everything that happens. So just wait up here, and let me handle the monsters.â
You almost nod. Almost. But then you remember what transpires up here above the platform. You know it sounds safer up here where youâre less likely to get involved in the carnage, but⌠âWait, no, if I stay up here then Iâll fall to my death when those girlsââ
Gojo laughs, interrupting you. âDonât worry about that. Itâll be fine.â
âHow?â
âJust trust me.â
âIâŚâ Itâs hard to. After everything youâve gone through itâs hard to trust in anything, to believe in anything. Even though youâve made it this far this time, the worry that something will go wrong and that youâll have to do it all again still lurks in the back of your mind.
Despite all that, you want to believe.
You want to believe that you can make it past this unending night, that one day youâll wake up and itâll no longer be October 31, 2018. And the first step towards that is trusting in Satoru Gojo.
â...okay,â you say quietly. âOkay.â
Gojo chuckles then asks, âAnything else before I head off?â
You start to ask if thereâs anything you should say, in case things donât work out, but you stop yourself. Youâre choosing to trust him, to believe in himâ you can figure out that stuff later if things end up going south after all. So, instead you give him a smile and it feels a little weird because you donât remember the last time you did. âGood luck!â
For a split second, Gojo looks almost surprised, but then he laughs again, beaming widely at you. He starts to move past you and reaches out to give you what you think is meant to be a reassuring squeeze of the shoulder and then heâs off. You turn to watch him go, the crowd, once again, parting almost naturally for him.
When he reaches the barricade, he pauses, raising his hand as if heâs giving you one last wave. Then he jumps over it onto his little perch and then less than a minute later heâs gone, descending to the platform below.
Now, all you can do is wait.
You check your phone again and itâs 8:44PM. If you remember correctly, the high school girls start threatening everyone right before 9PM. With Gojoâs arrival being shifted back almost five minutes, does that mean that theyâll be shifted back too? It would make sense, but youâre not too sure.
Out of habit, you keep checking your phone and at nearly 9PM, you hear the shrill voice of one of the girls over the crowd, commanding everyone to do what she says, her partner stringing up bodies until everyone listens. Everything plays out just as you remember it, which is mildly comforting, though you know that the events that happen up here are more or less independent from what happens below.
Surely, just as Gojo said, a few minutes arenât going to change anything, butâ
No.
You agreed to trust him. To trust that everything would be fine.
When the girls start to demand that as many people as possible climb onto the roots and vines covering the atrium your heart starts to hammer in your chest. In just a few minutes, all the foliage will disintegrate beneath you, and you and everyone else here will fall into the abyss below.
You are afraid.
There isnât a single loop where youâve really survived this fall. If you donât die in midair, you die right after landing. Itâs a death trap, and thatâs why youâve stopped coming up here. Thereâs a part of you, the part that knows whatâs about to happen, that wants to try and run back onto stable footing. But you canât, because you know if you do then the girls will kill you for sure; you have to stay.
Itâll be fine, you tell yourself, itâll be okay.
You just have to trust Gojo.
An eight car train is pulling in. Please wait behind the yellow line.
You hear the announcement faintly below you. Itâs almost time. You brace yourself and try to stay calm. Gojo said he would protect you, that you wouldnât die. You donât know how he intends to keep that promise, but all you can do is believe in his words.
Itâll be fine. Itâll be okay.
The vines and roots start to crack and the ground beneath you starts to give out. You squeeze your eyes shut as that sickening weightless feeling overtakes you. It occurs to you that this is actually quite literally a trust fallâ will Satoru Gojo really be able to catch you?
As you fall, you realize almost instantly that something is different.
Youâve experienced this fall dozens of times and so, even though it has been a while since youâve gone this route, you are very familiar with what it feels like. Something is different. Youâre falling faster. The trajectory is changing. Itâs like some force, other than gravity, is pulling at you.
Is this Gojoâs doing?
Just as your body collides with the ground you hear the sounds of mutilating flesh meld with the screams surrounding you. Blood and severed limbs litter the ground, but you try to ignore it. You need to focus on your own survival right now. Quickly, you scramble to your feet scan the area around you; youâre on the platform right now and right in front of you isâ
Right in front of you is Satoru Gojo.
His back is turned to you, his focus currently elsewhere. Looking at him you realize you recognize this scene, though itâs much closer and at a different angle. Heâs about to do that thing, that thing that knocks you out.
Something in you tells you to move closer to him, after all, he used his mysterious powers to deliberately bring you closer to him, right? You rush toward him and as you do something he said earlier pops up in your mind.
Anyone you happen to be touching when you activate your technique gets affected by it too!
Whatever heâs about to do⌠Is that his âtechnique?â And if it is, would it work the same way as yours? If so, thereâs only one way to find out: you need to touch him. You dodge monsters and other people as you run toward Satoru Gojo andâ
A monster still manages to grab you, its large hands wrapping around your wrist. You try and yank it free, but it's much stronger than you are.
âShit!â you hiss as the monster starts to pull you toward it and away from Gojo. What do you do? Your other hand is still free, should you try to punch it in the face? Orâ
Before you can do anything, something blasts the monsterâs head clean off. Shocked, you stare as the monsterâs body slumps onto the ground, its grip loosening on you instantly. You whip your head around to find that while Gojo still has his back to you, his arm is bent back in your direction, his palm open as if he fired some invisible blast from it.
Then you feel it again, something pulling at you, but this time it's more forceful. Your body is yanked toward Gojo and the second you feel his hand press against you, you see him make that gesture with his other hand.
âDomain Expansion,â he whispers in a strained voice. âInfinite Void!â
Something happens and your vision flashes for a fraction of a second. And thenâ
The room is enveloped in an eerie stillness; all the violence and bloodshed coming to an abrupt stop. Monsters and humans alike stand like the living dead, unconscious with their eyes wide open as if they are staring into an infinite abyss. You recognize this scene, youâre familiar with it because itâs similar to the one you wake up to after being hit by Gojoâs âdomain expansion.â The only difference is the presence of the monsters, who are all but gone when you regain consciousness.
The pressure from Gojoâs hand is gone and he says to you, his voice still low. âIf youâre squeamish when it comes to blood and gore, it might be best for you to close your eyes.â
And then heâs gone.
You do not take his advice. You do not close your eyes. How many loops were you unable to witness whatâs about to unfold? A few hundred? A few thousand? And if all goes to plan, then you will never get another chance again: thereâs no way you could possibly look away.
And what you see unfold before you is that Satoru Gojo was right.
He is the one to kill all the monsters.
Itâs not as if you really had any doubt, after all, it seemed like the most logical conclusion to come to and yetâŚ
Thereâs a difference between knowing and seeing.
All the violence resumes and the platform is engulfed in the sounds of carnage and slaughter once more. The lack of terrified screams makes everything more disconcertingâ without them, all you can hear is the squelching echo of mangled flesh and blood splattering all over the place. You canât really see him, but you can tell where Satoru Gojo is in the crowd as he leaves dozens upon dozens of decapitated heads soaring in his wake. Once or twice, he leaps out of the crowd and even from where you stand you can see the crazed glow of his inhumanly blue eyes as he massacres monster after monster.
Even though you donât think you have anything to be scared of, you are still terrified: Satoru Gojo is no longer a man, but violence incarnate. You want to move closer to where Gojo gets trapped, but youâre afraid to. What if you get in his way? What if he kills you by accident?
Dying again when youâve made it this far is definitely not ideal, but isnât being killed by Gojo the best case scenario? Because then the two of you would probably loop together again andâ
No.
Gojo said you wouldnât die.
He said heâd protect you.
Itâs hard to believe when heâs in the middle of a massacre, slaughtering monsters left and right, but you remind yourself yet again that you have to believe in him.
You take a deep breath and start moving, taking care to keep an eye on where Gojo is. You donât know how long this is supposed to take, but you do know where he ends up when heâs just about done. The closer he gets to that spot, the sooner the prison realm will be unleashed upon him.
Thereâs a small group of zombified people nearby and you settle yourself among them. Itâs not super close, but you think it's close enough that you'd be able to run over and kick the box away from Gojo if you have to. You do a quick survey to see if you can spot the body snatcher, but he's nowhere to be found. Hopefully, he hasn't noticed you moving around, or, if he has, he's more concerned with Gojo than he is with you. Given that you always seem to be the last thing he acknowledges, you'd like to think that he doesn't consider you a threat.
Which you're not, not really anyway.
The sounds of slaughter start to die down and you look to see Gojo approaching the spot where he gets caught. He looks beat, his eyes unfocused and his breathing heavy. You do another quick scan around him and notice a small box a few meters away from him, wrapped in what looks like paper charms or seals or whatever they're called. That has to be the prison realmâ though it looks different than what you saw before. Gojo seems to notice it right after you do, his gaze honing in on it, examining it with some measure of bewilderment. Then, some invisible force slices through all the paper seals covering the box and it expands, the corners of the box floating up in midair to reveal what looks like a large sheet of dark red flesh with a large bloodshot eye stapled to the middle.
Disgusting.
If Gojo didnât realize before, he seems to now, because he takes a step back, away from the grotesque thing. Good, goodâ
âHey! Satoru!â Your blood runs cold at the sound of the body snatcherâs voice. He emerges from the crowd, smiling widely as he gives Gojo a wave. âLong time no see!â
Satoru Gojoâs entire body goes rigid. Shit. You told him, you warned him about what was going to happen, who he was going to see, but was that not enough? Itâs possible that no amount of warning would have been enough to mentally prepare Satoru Gojo for the sight of the man he said he killed a year ago. After all, you know that thereâs a stark difference between knowing and seeing. Even then, if Gojo doesnât gather his wits and move now then heâs going to get caught and you canât let that happen.
Your body moves before you can even think about it.
You scramble out from your hiding spot in the crowd and throw yourself in between Satoru Gojo and the prison realm. Thereâs no way you can kick it away from him now, not when itâs in this form, but maybe, if you get between them you can at least keep it from capturing him.
The eye quivers erratically, as it flits from Gojo to you. Every hair on your body stands on end as it watches you, the pupil dilating and contracting uncontrollably. You canât look away from it, your own gaze fixed to your image reflected in the black abyss of the pupil. Something in the back of your mind tells you to stop, to get away, itâs dangerous, but you keep your feet firmly planted to the ground.
A second, or maybe even a minute passes and the prison realm shifts, its fleshy form morphing to restrain you.
The body jacker looks at you, his frown tinged with disgust. âDonât you think youâre being rather rude by butting into what could have been a touching reunion?â
You scowl. Is he still trying to play the role of Suguru Geto?
He sighs and looks past you at Gojo. âSatoru, I thought bringing lesser sorcerers to fight alongside you was more trouble than it was worth?â
You hear Gojo snort from behind you, âIt is⌠but this person here isnât a sorcerer⌠Just like you arenât Suguru Geto.â
The faker almost pouts and presses his hand to his chest as if Gojo's words have wounded him. âSatoru, Iâm hurt, how could you say such a thing to your best friend?â
âCut the bullshit,â Gojo snarls. âYou canât fucking fool me. You might be in Suguruâs body but I know with all my heart and soul that youâre not him.â
The corpse snatcher stares at Gojo, expression blank before he sighs once more. Then, his gaze shifts back to you, his eyes narrowed as he looks at you with sheer disdain. It feels as if youâve been drenched in ice cold water. There's no smile this time but you already know what's going to happen.
Heâs going to kill you.
âI intended to deal with you later since you seemed harmless enough,â he says, raising a hand to summon a monsterâ the same one he always uses to end your life. âBut youâre in the way. So, I think itâs for the best if I just get rid of you right now.â
Instinctively, you try to take a step back but the prison realmâs restraints keep you in place. Not that it would have mattered much, even in the loops where youâve tried to escape the fakerâs monster, it still kills you, too fast and too agile for an ordinary human like you to avoid. All you can do is squeeze your eyes shut and wait for the monster to kill you. At least, itâs always painless.
Something touches your back.
Your eyes shoot open.
Before you is the monster, wiggling and writhing only mere centimeters from your face. It gurgles and snarls at you, desperate to fulfill its masterâs wishes and kill you but it doesnât move any closer. You stare at it with wide eyes, unsure of what to do.
Someone behind you clicks their tongueâ Gojo. You try to turn your head to look at him, but your movements are too limited, the most you can do is turn your head to the side. The sounds the monster is making start to change, sounding more frenzied, almost as if itâs in pain, and you flit your eyes in its direction just in time to see its entire body explode. The monster's guts and bright purple blood fly off in every direction, getting on the floor, the ceiling, the zombified bodies of the people unfortunate enough to be nearby, but not on you.
This is Satoru Gojoâs doing.
He steps in front of you, half turned towards you as he moves in between you and the body snatcher. His hands are shoved in his pockets as he loudly says, âDid you really forget about me?â
Youâre not sure if heâs talking to you or the body snatcher.
Past him, the imposter scowls, raising his hand once more, probably to summon even more monsters, but Gojoâs quicker, and it almost looks like his eyes are glowing even brighter, the blue looking almost white as he whips his head in the fakerâs direction. The sound of mangling flesh and breaking bones echoes throughout the room as Gojo, using that mysterious power of his, seems to break the fakerâs arm.
The body snatcher hisses loudly and despite the fact that his face is twisted in very obvious pain, he tries to shoot Gojo a mocking smile. âDo you really think you can kill your best friend again?â
âI already told you,â Gojo turns to fully face the monster inhabiting Getoâs corpse. He tilts his head a little to the side and some force starts to squeeze at the fakerâs neck. âYouâre not Suguru.â
You hear a loud crack as Gojo telekinetically snaps his neck.
The head rolls onto the ground and you almost look away, but then you notice his eyes still moving, looking around. Is he still alive? Then you remember: the thing possessing Suguru Getoâs body was some kind of parasite. âGojo! Wait! The brain!â
He reacts almost instantly, head turning and in an instant the skull is crushed and all that remains is red splotch on the ground.
You almost relax. Almost.
But the body is still standing.
Horrified, you watch as it quivers violently before falling to the ground. Then what looks like dozens of black spirits start to erupt from the corpse and the entire room is engulfed with a shrill howling.
What the hell is going on?
âThose must be all the cursed spirits he consumed,â Gojo explains uselessly, voice barely audible over the screaming. âGuess he was empty before.â
You donât bother asking what he means. There are bigger problems right now. âWhat do we do?â
âNo choice to exorcise them,â he answers plainly.
For him to exorcise them, he means. You both know that thereâs not much that you can do. You still canât move and honestly, you donât even know if itâs possible to get out of the prison realmâs restraints. Not without dying. And if you die nowâŚ
Everything will have been for naught.
Youâll reset time and have to do this all over againâ assuming you can even get to this point again.
There has to be something, you just have to think outside the box.
Or ratherâ
âGojo!â
He glances back at you.
âYou need to seal me in the prison realm!â you exclaim. He turns to face you fully, looking bewildered and you start to explain as fast as you can. âThose things are going to attack any minute right? I canât move or try to hide and I canât expect you to protect me the entire time and if I die then Iâll end up looping time again, butâ but, if you seal me in the prison realm then that wonât happen.â
Gojo frowns, looking conflicted. âYou donât think I can do it?â
âWouldn't it be easier if you didnât have to?â
He tilts head and you think heâs conceding your point.
âPlease,â you beg, staring at him desperately. âWe donât have much time. The other⌠cursed spirits will wake up soon too!â
You donât have to explain that you mean Volcano Head and friends.
It takes only a second for Gojo to consider the very few options you have. â...how do you seal it? Do you know?â
âI think so,â you answer. âThereâs no guarantee itâll work but I think that if you say âprison realm, gate closeâ it should seal me inside.â
If anything, itâs worth a shot.
Gojo nods. âDo you know how to break the seal?â
âI⌠donât,â you confess. You never asked, and you donât think the body snatcher would have told you even if you did. He only told you that it holds one and thatâŚ
That time doesnât flow in the box.
â...you donât have to break the seal.â
Gojo frowns, âWait a secââ
âEven if I make it past tonight⌠What if this all happens again? What if I inadvertently trap myself in another time loop?â you ask. âI⌠I donât want to have to go through all of this again. Itâs better for me in a place where time doesnât pass.â
You donât know for sure if itâll be better, but right here, right now, it seems like the best option.
It feels like an eternity passes before Gojo says anything.
â...fine,â he agrees and you donât quite know how to feel about it. The howling around you all grows louder. You wonder why the cursed spirits havenât attacked yet. Maybe Gojoâs power is holding them at bay⌠for now anyway. You both know that he canât ignore them forever.
â...before I do, though, mind if I ask you just one thing?â
You blink. âNot sure what I can do for you in this stateâŚâ
He laughs. âI just want to know your name.â
What an odd request. Though, now that you think about it, you donât think that during this loop or any other loop really, youâve ever told him your name. It only seems fair to tell him, since youâve known his for longer than heâs known of your existence.
You tell him your name.
He nods, looking as if heâs committing to memory. Probably easier to remember than his phone number. âAny last words?â
You try to think of something. Nothing comes to mind and you just shake your head.
Gojo takes a deep breath, âAlrighty then⌠Prison realm, gate close.â
Just as it did the many times youâve seen Satoru Gojo sealed away, the boxes and restraints around you vibrate a little before they start to close around you, growing large enough to fit your body as they approach.
You wonât see it, but once youâre inside the box will shrink and become small enough to fit in the palm of someoneâs hand.
Will it be quiet inside?
In your final seconds, some words, some last words come to mind, and you say them, hoping that he hears them in time. âThank you, Satoru Gojo.â
You burn the glittering glow of his brilliant bright blue eyes into your mind.
And then, everything is engulfed in an unending black.
Itâs November 30, 2018â morning on the campus of Tokyo Prefectural Jujutsu High School.
Satoru Gojo strides through the school grounds, casually tossing a small silver box with eerie blue eyes known as the prison realm up and down in his grasp. Walking at his side is Shoko Ieiri, a pretty woman whoâs been unfortunate enough to have been Satoruâs friend since high school.
âAre you sure this is a good idea?â Shoko asks, twirling a few strands of her long brown hair.
âWhat do you mean?â Satoru responds nonchalantly. âAll my ideas are good ideas.â
Shoko hums in clear dissent, but doesnât say anything more. Even she knows better than to try and waste her time trying to argue with Satoru. âIâm just worried about their mental state. Didnât you say that time doesnât flow in the box?â
âIâd be worried if it was some normal person,â Satoru says. âBut after what theyâve gone through I think theyâll be fine.â
â...well, if you say so.â
The two arrive at their destination: the largest training area on the Jujutsu High grounds. Satoru places the prison realm at the center and takes a few steps back with Shoko standing behind him, in case anything happens.
He doesnât think it will, but itâs always good to take at least a few precautions.
âGojo, are you sure we should be doing this?â Shoko asks again. âDidnât they want to remain in the box?â
âOf course I am,â Satoru says with his usual air of confidence before looking back at the prison realm nestled in the grass. He grins and thenâ
âPrison realm, gate open.â
if you made it this far. thank you. it's my sincerest hope that you enjoyed the ride. 3
#OHHHHHHHH MY GOD.#okokokok this is gonna be. Really Incoherent sorry in advance đđ niku this made meâŚâŚ insane. fully. someone needs to restrain me#one of my favorite gojo fics Ever??? like genuinely????? this was SUCH a pleasure to read i have sm i wanna say :((( hhhhhh#FIRST OF ALLL the higurashi poemâŚ. what a banger <33 i LOVE how it ties in with the ending too but more on that later :33#but itâs also so perfect bc reading this fic rlly did feel like playing a vn in the BEST way possibleâŚ. just. seeing all the tiny variation#experiencing the loops along w readerâŚâŚ it was just SUCH an enjoyable experience i canât even describe it!!!!!!!!! iâm so floored!!!!!!!!!!#like i ADORE timeloops itâs my favorite trope Ever and this fic was just . a godsend?? perfection??? the best loopfic ive read?????#IâM STILL GOING FULLY INSANE OVER IT BTW it satiated every single craving i have for timeloop content. my brain is leaking endorphins rn đľâ#i LOVE the opening lines and the constant reusage of âItâs the night of October 31 2018â Halloween in ShibuyaââŚâŚ just so satisfying somehow#and readerâs mental state was also so thoughtfully depicted⌠it was so easy to insert myself into them but theyâre also. rlly charming?#them latching onto gojo as the one anomaly of the timeloopâŚ. fixating on him and his beauty (real as fuck btw)âŚ. and searching for hope!!!#finding hope in gojo!!!! learning to trust him!!!!! :((( it feels kinda like a very twisted one-sided slowburn ⌠and i ate it up.#i also rlly like that itâs not explicitly romantic!!! thereâs enough subtext to enjoy a romance aspect but itâs not the Focus yk??#and i like that!!! the focus is on reader and the timeloop and both of those aspects are woven into gojo rlly naturally :>#ok so iâm using that as a segway. bc OFC i need to rant abt gojo fucking satoru and how much i love him and ur take on him đđ#every once in a while iâll find a fic where iâm like. this author knows Gojo Satoru personally. they speak to him on the phone every night.#and this fic is ABSOLUTELY one of those likeâŚ.. this gojo is Canon to me. iâm so serious abt it like thatâs HIM !!!#and it just reminded me of why i love him sm bc this rlly does feel exactly like the gojo from the manga and thatâs SO impressive 2 me âŚ.#iâm in awe of u niku. i donât even know where to begin w gojo bc i loved SO many lines and lil details u put inâŚâŚâŚ. đľâđŤđľâđŤ#heâs just. soooooo charming :/// he truly is. heâs beautiful and handsome and he gives you his number every loop . w a star symbol!!!!#asks you for your phone or a pen and gets all excited writing his name⌠the mochi receiptâŚ. 𼺠heâs so endearing we need to put him Down.#HEâS SO GOODDDDD I CANâT SAY IT ENOUGHâŚ. his convos with reader were a huge highlight for me and i loved loved LOVED#the moment he finally understands their situation. when they speak and he hears them out and heâs almost gentle. sooo reassuring.#starting to think youâre genuinely gege akutami btw like . gojo is so complex but you just. captured him perfectly???#heâs cocky and playful and teasing and a killing machine and heâs Kind. heâs playful even when youâre a stranger#and when he finally hears you out he speaks softly and says heâll protect you :((( reader is better than me i wouldâve cried LMAO#THE DIALOGUE IS SO GOOD N FEELS SO REAL âdid you fall in love with me just now?â NOOO âŚ.. âšď¸âšď¸âšď¸âšď¸ âŚ. (maybe âŚâŚ..)#ack. heâs the most charming man in the universe my heart was fluttering like crazy this isnât⌠normal human behaviorâŚâŚâŚ#WAIT i almost forgot âŚ. i too adore the jjk dub and every time gojo spoke i heard kaiji tang in my head <33 10/10 would recommend!!!#writing âŠ
1K notes
¡
View notes
Text
fast forward - pjs
pairing. jay x fem!reader
synopsis. After yet another romantic disappointment in the form of one Jake Sim, you go to the well youâve always believed to grant wishes and ask for your one and true love to appear. That night, you go to sleep in your bed but wake up in a strange house. When you head downstairs, you find a man washing the dishes and telling you your favorite meal is waiting on the table for you. Youâve spent hours glaring at the back of that head, you could recognize it anywhereâit belongs to none other than Park Jongseong, your high school sworn enemy... and future husband, or so it seems.
genre+warnings. high school au, the type of e2l where they never really hated each other to begin with, they act like they're academic rivals even though they're not particularly academically gifted, jay has a thing about german the language, sunoo and kazuha besties, heeseung is a loser, jake and sunghoon are assholes sorry, ive liz is german, 02z get into a white-boy locker-room fight, attempts at banter etc, they're a little bit silly
word count. 26.6k
a/n. had the idea for this listening to fast forward by somi LAST SUMMER... and only wrote it this summer and only posting it now <3 i hope u guys enjoy reading this as much as i enjoyed writing it !!!!! jay is an absolute cutie here pls love him as much as i do.... as always let me know what u think and remember to vote for @zreamy president in the upcoming elections, shes the only one i trust to beta-read and hence to run a country <3 no it doesnt matter that shes scottish put this woman in the white house
There is only one thorn on the otherwise immaculate rose that is your life.
Every morning, you wake up feeling refreshed from eight hours of restful sleep. You go downstairs to the kitchen, a boiling cup of milky Earl Grey tea already waiting for you, and eat breakfast with your brother Jinwoo and father. Your mom dashes in, placing a kiss on your and Jinwooâs foreheads, and on your dadâs lips, saying sheâs late for work but will see you in the evening. âHave fun at school,â she bids every morning without fail. Your dad teaches Korean Literature at your school, so the three of you drive there together. He watches amusedly as you and Jinwoo bicker light-heartedly on the way thereâeven in the pits of his puberty, you and your brother get along like two peas in a pod. He still tells you about everything he learns at school and fills you in on the drama in his class, up-to-date with everything even though he pretends not to be interested.
Youâre always one of the first to arrive at school, so you scroll through your feed or finish up some homework as you wait for your classmates to file in. Your friends circle your table and you chat about the last episode of the show youâve been watching until the bell rings and they leave you for their assigned seat.
Class starts with your teacher handing out the math tests you took last week. âJay and Y/N, great job, keep it up,â he says as he walks past you and the boy in front of you, and hands you your paper. Relief floods your body as you take in the bright red 82 in the top right-hand cornerânot the best of the class, but enough for you to be satisfied.Â
Good friends, good gradesânothing extraordinary, but itâs a life you dare say any high school senior would want.
Thereâs just that one thing. The thorn in your side that wonât stop poking.
You glare at it as it whips around in its seat and takes a peek at the grade on your paper before you get to snatch it away from view. It only gives you three seconds to rejoice over your grade.Â
âAw, Y/N. Good effort! Maybe youâll do better next time!â Jongseong coos, holding up his test for you to see and glare even harder at. 85. Not that big of a difference, but it makes you want to punch the faux sympathetic pout off of his face.Â
Youâre about to spit something just as petty back at him, but someone whispers your name, and you turn your head in their direction. Beside you, Jake is smiling at you as he asks what grade you got. Your attention is swiftly taken off of Jongseong, whom you donât even notice dramatically rolling his eyes, huffing in annoyance, and turning around.Â
â82,â you whisper back, holding up your paper for Jake to see. His friendly, absurdly handsome smile makes your ears burn. âYou?â
The corners of his lips fall down into a sad poutâthe kind that makes your heart melt rather than gets on your nerves like someone else. â68,â he says. Leans in over the gap between your tables. Your heart jumps uncontrollably around your rib cage. âDo you wanna go over it together during the break? I think I need some help.â
One-on-one time with Jake Sim? You donât need to be asked twice. You nod silently, almost mesmerized by Jake as his grin widens. He leans back in his chair. âPerfect. Iâll see you in the library, then.â
âLibrary, yeah,â you echo dumbly, but thankfully, your teacher tells you to all quiet down and starts the lesson.Â
Youâre antsy all throughout the rest of your morning classes and lunch break, so nervous that you barely manage to finish your yogurt. Of course, your friends, Sunoo and Kazuha, have a field day with this, and even you canât help but laugh along as they jump between reassuring you that itâll be fine, slapping your shoulders with excitement and making fun of your uncharacteristic quietness.
Jake arrives at the library five minutes after you, looking around the room before he finds you at the big round table in the back of the library. Your brain is too riddled with anxiety for you to make more small talk than âHey,â âHey,â âHow was your lunch?â âGood, yours?â âGood.â And so you just jump straight into it.
Youâve only had a couple minutes of quiet explanation on your part and heavy nodding on Jakeâs when Jay appears at the entrance of the library. He spots you and Jake immediately, and without any hesitation whatsoever heads towards you and sits down at your table, right across from the two of you.
âHey, Jay,â Jake greets in a friendly manner, but Jay only responds with a nod of his head.
âOh, donât mind me,â he says when he notices you glaring. âI wonât bother you.â
As if he could be anything other than a bother, you think, but courteously keep to yourself. The childish rivalry you and Jongseong have got going on has no business spoiling a rare hour of alone time you get with Jake. As you go over the exercises he had the most trouble with on the test with you, your eyes often drift over to Jongseong as if to check on himâyouâre cautious like heâs a spider in the corner of the room that might spring on you at any moment.
And indeed, the moment your gaze leaves him for more than a minute as you explain an intricate theorem to Jake, heâs out of sight, and panic shoots through you. Where the hell has he suddenly gone off to? you wonder, but not for long.
âThereâs a much easier way to do this, really,â says a voice from behind you, and of course, itâs none other than Jongseong himself, quite literally butting his way into your tutoring session. Right between you and Jake, he bends over and rests his elbows on the table, taking Jakeâs pencil from him and describing the theorem in a way that isnât that much simpler. Your eyes shoot bullets into the side of his face while he, unbothered, explains this and that to Jake, who glances at you a couple of times but otherwise does not seem so perturbed by the sudden change of tutor. Either Jongseong doesnât notice your glare or doesnât care, because he doesnât budge.
Just when theyâre done with the exercise and you think youâll get Jake to yourself again, another voice appears from behind, a much higher, girlier one. You notice the hand on Jakeâs shoulder first, until slowly, your eyes drift to the faceâyou recognize Yunjin, head of the cheerleading squad, and sheâs smiling at you, a smile that at once tries to cover and betrays her surprise at seeing you and Jake together. She doesnât acknowledge you any more than that, gaze going back to âJakey,â asking him if he wants to head to class together. You check the timeâfive minutes before the first bell rings. What do they need so much time getting to class for? Itâs not like any room in this school is more than a three-minute walk away.
But Jake doesnât even look back at you, just says âSure!â with far too much enthusiasm for your taste as he packs his stuff. âThanks, you two,â he says, looking at Jay first, then at you. You think his eyes linger on you for a second, but just like that, heâs gone, him and Yunjin walking side-by-side.
You watch them leaveâthey look good together, the cheerleading captain and the soccer teamâs star. The white Vans sheâs wearing have a bunch of red love hearts on them that look drawn on, and you think, Of course, Jake is the type to date someone cute, someone fun, someone who would draw on their shoes. Not someone like you, whose idea of a good Friday night is lighting up a scented candle and reading your favorite novel for the nth time. When theyâve left the library, you slump in your seat, crumpling the sheet of paper you had drawn a bunch of graphs and formulae on to make things clearer for Jake. Jay awkwardly clears his throat and finally returns to his seat, looking at you with his lips pressed in a tight line.
âY/N?â he asks tentatively, and the sound is too much to bear, so you pack your things and head to your next class early, too. Your mind is racing with a million thoughts a minuteâwho is that girl to Jake, how come youâve never seen them together before, how come he was so eager to leave with her, what was that smile she gave you about? In the fifty-five minutes of your biology class, which you uncharacteristically donât pay any attention to, youâve convinced yourself that they are crazy in love and that none of Jakeâs actions or words towards you had ever meant anything, that youâd liked him so much youâd dreamt up the possibility of his liking you back, too.
Your next lesson startsâthe smile Jake gives you as he walks into History is so bright, it dissipates any clouds hanging over your head. You do believe in male-female friendships, but despite yourself, you canât help but think that anyone in a relationship wouldnât give someone else such a perfect, warm smile. It just wouldnât be right. And so, you reason with yourself that simply walking to a class together didnât mean two people were a couple.
For an hour, you stare at the back of Jakeâs head, and although you do eventually come to the more sensible conclusion that a smile may just be a smile, you also think it's unlikely that he and Yunjin would be a thing. If they were, why would they hide it? Jake is so nice, you wouldnât be surprised if heâd exaggerated his enthusiasm upon seeing her. Youâre sure you still have your chances. He even says see you tomorrow when class is over and slips out of the room to go to soccer practice.Â
You feel like youâre walking on cloud 9 as you head from History to your next classâbut when you remember that the next class is German, your mood drops significantly. Because the universe has it out for you, you and Jay are two of just ten students in your year taking German as your second foreign language option, everyone else having gone for either French, Japanese or Spanish. Your reasoning for it is that your dad has had an obsession with Germany since his year abroad in Bavaria, and twelve-year-old you had wanted to make him happy. Eighteen-year-old you regrets it slightly, but at least now your dad is ecstatic every time you tell him in German that the dinner he made was really tasty. Why Jongseong decided to take it beats youâheâs probably just insane.
But because you donât really know anyone else in the class, and because itâs your last period of the day, you have no friends to run off with once the lesson is over, and he gets to bother you all the way from the classroom door to the staff parking lot.Â
Youâve barely finished bidding Auf Wiedersehen to your teacher and Jongseong is already harassing you. âSo, I didnât take you as the type to be into guys like Jake Sim.â He says Jakeâs name with such disdain, like he thinks heâs so much better than him, or like he hates him. It confuses you just as much as it annoys you; Jongseong didnât seem to have a problem with Jake earlier at the library.
âAnd thatâs your business, becauseâŚ?â
You donât look at Jongseong, whoâs quickened his pace to keep up with yours, but you can feel the smirk on his face. Itâs insufferable. âOh, itâs none of my business. Iâm just surprised, is all. You guys are so⌠I donât know, different.â
You scoff. âIf you think Iâm not good enough for someone like Jake, Iâd rather you tell me straight up, Jongseong. Or actually,â you say, looking up at him with a dry smile. âKeep it to yourself and leave me alone.â
He looks offended by your words, and it only adds to your already immense annoyanceâheâs the one who just insulted you, so why is he looking at you with those stupid furrowed eyebrows?
âI never said that.â
âYou didnât need to.â
âNo, Y/N.â He grabs your wrist and makes you face him, your stomach flipping in surprise that you quickly cover up. When he releases you, you cross your arms over your chest and wait for him to speak, keeping your eyes trained on a spot behind him. âI donât think heâs too good for you.âÂ
This makes you look at him. You have to admit, your curiosity is piqued. Not like Jongseong to say anything even vaguely in your favor. âHeâs justâŚâ He sighs, searches for the right word. âWell, heâs just a bit of a dick, isnât he?â
You freeze for a second. Youâre so taken aback, your scoff comes out more as a laughâPark Jongseong, king supreme of all dicks at this school, just called Jake Sim a dick?
âIâm sorry?â
He sighs again, as though youâre the unreasonable one. âHeâs so⌠smug. A wannabe class clown and thinks heâs the shit because heâs on the soccer team. Have you seen the way he swaggers around school?â
You look at him with fake sympathy. âJong, are you jealous?â
âPfft. No way. I just think itâs a shame you keep going after these dudes who are not even worth your time, or whatever, so yeahâŚâ he says, voice trailing off and looking down at his feet as he speaks. Hands in pockets and blank expression on his face, you can tell heâs trying to look cool, but the way heâs avoiding your gaze is a dead give-away. Even his ears have turned red. Jongseong is having one of those shy moments he has when heâs trying to be nice to you. Clearly, a simple act of kindness towards you is so hard for him that it radically changes the way he behaves.Â
Like when you were fifteen and you just couldnât get this stupid art project right, so he stayed behind for three hours after school with you, helping you draw and paint and cut and glue.Â
Like when you were sixteen and your grandma just passed away, making you miss a week of school, and without a word, barely looking at you, he gave you a stack of handwritten notes of all the lessons you missed. To this day, youâre not sure how he did itâyou werenât in the same class that year.
Like when you were seventeen and Park Sunghoon rejected you in the middle of a crowded hallway. Youâd run off to the girlsâ bathroom to cry it out, but Jongseong quickly found you and spent the entire period cursing Sunghoon out instead of being in English, like you were both meant to be. He was uncharacteristically nice to you for a few days after that, never starting an argument for no reason or interrupting you when you spoke. When you snapped at him, telling him it only made you feel worse that he treated you differently, he smiled and told you how stupid you looked when you cried. It made you laugh more than it shouldâve.
Like now, when he suddenly decides that Jake Sim is also a wrong choice for you. âHim and Sunghoon are good friends, you know that?â he says. âBirds of a feather, and allâŚâ
So you know that Jongseong is not all bad. He has his redeeming qualities. He can even be nice sometimes, when he so wishes. But those moments are so few and far between that when he returns to his usual insufferable self, you wonder if youâd dreamt it all up. Which is why you canât quite take him seriously right now. You roll your eyes and resume walking towards the parking lot, but of course, he continues to follow you. âWhy do you even care who I go after?â
âI donât-â
âYou clearly do, otherwise you wouldnât be bothering me like this.â
âWell, if all your attention is taken up by that douche, who am I going to go up against?â
âThatâs what youâre worried about? That I stop arguing with you?â you say, disbelief clear in your voice.
âIâm offended, Y/N,â he starts, his sarcastic tone making you roll your eyes again. âThat our little rivalry matters so little to you.â
âWeâre not even the top students of our class, for Godâs sake, weâre not fighting over anything.â
âIâve actually got the best grades in German, thanks very much.â
âWhatever. I wouldnât call it a rivalry so much as a mutual dislike of each other, because one of us woke up one day and decided to start going against everything the other said.â
âAt least youâre self-aware.â
The exit to the parking lot now appears to you like the gates of heaven. You donât even bother replying to him, thinking that heâll just leave you alone now that youâre here. But as you step outside, he places himself in front of you and blocks your path, arms splayed out, eyes wide like heâs just seen a ghost.
âWhat are you-â
âHave you done the German homework for tomorrow?â
The sudden change of subject gives you whiplash. âWhat? No, Miss Schumacher assigned it just now-â
âWell, given your tendency for getting the word order all wrong, I can already tell you youâre not gonna have fun with it-â
You pinch the nose of your bridge, trying to calm yourself down before you lose whatâs remaining of your mind. âJongseong, were you actually dropped on the head as a baby? Go away. My dadâs gonna be here any second.â You try to walk around him, but he steps in front of you again. You peer up at him, undisguised annoyance in your eyes. Where are your dad and brother when you need them?
âIâm just saying, youâll probably need help with it-â
âI wonât. And if I do, Iâll just use Google. Now get out of my way,â you say, and manage to duck under one of his arms.
Then you see it.
Well, actually, it takes you a second to understand what it is youâre seeing. At first, you think itâs one of those horny couples thinking theyâre being really discreet by going to the staff parking lot to make out, when in reality they could be caught by any one at any time. Theyâre just far enough that when you do a double take, you realize that you do know the back of that head; that fluffy mop of brown hair. You sit behind it every History period, next to it every Maths and English period.
The girl is up against the wall, and you canât really see her, what with her and Jakeâs tongues being down each otherâs throat and his body blocking her from your view, his hands on her hips, her arms around his shoulders. All the works. Sheâs wearing a cheerleader uniform, so she could be any of twenty girlsâbut youâre pretty sure only one of them wears a pair of white Vans with red love hearts on them.
Your heart sinks to your stomach.
Youâre frozen in place when a whistle rings in the distance, and Jake and Yunjin separate, giggling to each other as they jog to wherever the sound came from. The sports field, probably. Itâs Monday; the cheerleaders and the soccer team share the field for their practice.Â
Jake spots you and Jongseong staring at them. He waves quickly, awkwardly at you, still smiling even when surprise coats his features. Yunjin tugs on his hand and just like that, theyâre gone.Â
âY/N-âÂ
Jayâs voice fades in the background. You want to get away from this situation as quickly as possibleâitâs embarrassing enough seeing the guy you like and thought you had a chance with kissing a girl that is arguably much more on his level than you are, but having Jongseong of all people not only witness it, but try to protect you from it, God knows why, makes it impossibly mortifying. You speed-walk to your dadâs car, huffing as you plop in your seat and slamming the door behind you. Your brother is already sitting in the passenger seat, and you donât even argue with him about it. When you only give single-word replies to his questions, he shrugs and returns to playing Clash of Clans on his phone.Â
The moment you get home, you fish a five cent coin from your purse, change into mud boots and grab your dogâs leash. Desperate times call for desperate measures.
After half-an-hour of trudging through leaves and soft ground, muddy from many a rainy November night, you and Pablo, your massive, fluffy airhead of a German Shepherd, find yourselves at the well in the middle of the forest. Ever since you were little, you have attributed magic powers to the wellânot that anyone told you any sort of myth about it, but you remember reading a story about a magic well and decided that your well would be magical, too. Youâve never wanted to abuse its powers, so youâve used your wishes conscientiously: things like getting a certain present at Christmas (when you were nine and the most important thing ever was getting the Monster High doll you wanted) or not stuttering during your presentation in class (when you really didnât want to embarrass yourself in front of Park Sunghoon and his cool friends). Every wish youâve made has come true. Whenever a faint voice of reason tells you that itâs because you always ask for very realistic things, you squash it and continue to believe in the well.
Because today, youâre not asking for something realistic.Â
Today, youâre asking the well to show you the way to love.
Youâve grown up watching The Notebook and Pride & Prejudice. Your parents are high school sweethearts who are still, twenty-five years later, happily married. You devour romance novels and binge-watch Asian dramas, the more unrealistic and romantic, the better. You are convinced that soulmates exist, that love always finds a way, that it is there for anyone to see. That it can take form in a childhood friend, an archnemesis, a total stranger. Â
But for some reason, it hasnât shown itself to you yet, no matter how valiantly youâve looked.Â
Youâre absolutely sick and tired of it. It is Jake kissing another girl, itâs Sunghoon leading you on for months and then rejecting you in front of everyone, itâs your ex-boyfriend-who-shall-not-be-named, your first love and first heartbreak, dumping you after a year and getting with the girl he had told you not to worry about a week later. At a party a few months later, heâd said, word for word, âAt least I didnât cheat on you.â
Coin lodged between your hands, you interlace your fingers and press your palms closely together, eyes screwed shut in desperation. âHey,â you start simply, because you and the well are good friends. âItâs been a while since Iâve asked for anything, so I hope you can indulge me⌠This is gonna sound so clichĂŠ, but Iâm really tired of getting fucked over by boys â excuse my French â and I just wanna meet the person whoâs right for me, you know? Momâs always reminding me that Iâm only eighteen, and that Iâve got plenty of time to meet someone, but I just feel like if I donât find someone now, I never will. And if I get fucked over again â sorry â Iâll just lose hope and write off men for the rest of my life. So help a girl out, will you? Iâll leave it to you how you wanna go about it, but⌠just show me that thereâs someone out there. Please.â
When you open your eyes, you need a few seconds to adjust to the darkness. You toss the coin in the well. It doesnât make a sound as it hits the bottom, as if it has been absorbed within the old brick walls. You know better than to question itâthe well works in mysterious ways.
Youâre quiet that entire evening, making up an excuse of a tiring day at school when your parents ask. Really, youâre just thinking about your wish, whether itâll work, what might happen. You half-ass your homeworkâJay was right, the German exercises throw you into a bout of despair, so you quickly close your textbook and bury yourself in your sheets, falling asleep hours earlier than you usually would.
--
For some reason, the first thing you notice when you wake up is that itâs still dark outside. It must be the middle of the night, you think. It takes you a few seconds to realize that youâre in a completely strange room.
Instead of your floral-patterned sheets, you find yourself covered by delicate silk sheets that your parents would never agree to buy you, no matter how adamantly you argued for the benefits of silk for your skin. If skincare experts online had convinced you of one thing, it was that silk would do wonders for your obstinate acne. You slide out of bed and find a pair of slippers on the floor, as if waiting for you. Even the pajamas youâre wearing are fancier, more grown up than the ones you have at home, a set composed of a pinstriped button-up and shorts. You look around, for some reason more surprised and curious than panicked. You couldâve been kidnapped, for all you know, but all you care about right now is this room. Rather than the pink and white walls that have surrounded you since childhood, covered with pictures of you and your friends, postcards of artwork bought at museums, and posters of your favorite movies, the walls here are beige and mostly bare, except for a painting of Japanese cherry blossoms above the bed and a family portrait on the opposite wall, above a wooden chest of drawers.Â
The family portrait. A woman, a man, and what you can only assume are their children. They look like twinsâtwo girls. Canât be older than three years old. Out of the four faces, you recognize two of them. You recognize them far too well. One of them is yours, of course. You look slightly older, by a decade, maybe? Youâre glad to know that you wonât fall off after twenty-five, like much of social media has led you to believe.Â
The other face you recognize immediately, too, but it takes you a few seconds to truly believe it.
It belongs to none other than Park Jongseong.
A dry chuckle falls from your throat, as if someone has just made a very insulting joke at your expense and you have to pretend you find it funny. The well has a very odd sense of humor, you think. Itâs probably just a prank, a magic-induced nightmare before the real thing. Except this already feels real, disorientingly so. The fabric on your skin, the picture, the room. It all feels too real, more tangible than any dream youâve ever had.
You take a step closer towards the picture, as if looking at it harder will make Jongseongâs face fade into that of another man, the real man that will become your husband and father of your children. But alas, his features remain the same, frozen in time by the photographerâs camera. He, too, looks olderâand not only does he not fall off after twenty-five, he becomes all the more handsome for it.
Is this how you find out that Jongseong was handsome all along? You stare at it until the familiar face becomes practically unrecognizable, like repeating a word so much it stops feeling like one. The straight nose, the almond-shaped eyes that seem to have softened overtime, whereas his jaw has remained as sharp as ever. Have his eyebrows always framed his face so perfectly? Has that dimple always been there?Â
You look around again, and the bright numbers on the bedside alarm clock catches your attention. They read 9:57 p.m., but itâs the date that makes your stomach sinkâtoday is still the 18th of November, but ten years later. You stare at the clock, at the unfamiliar number, a date so far into the future you canât wrap your head around it. You could barely envision life after high school.
Downstairs, the sudden clang of pots and the sound of a tap running manage to rip your gaze away from the alarm clock. An overwhelming curiosity tells you to follow the noise. This is all a dream, so there are no consequences if you explore a bit more, right?Â
Youâve never been in this house before, and you have no idea where your feet are taking you until you find yourself in the kitchen. Itâs the only lit room in the house, and youâre creepily standing in the dark under a wide archway that connects the kitchen to what looks like the dining room. A man has his back to you, washing dishes and putting them out to dry on a rack next to the sink. Heâs wearing a white cotton sweater, one that you feel you recognise without ever having seen before, and a brown apron is tied around his neck and waist.Â
The first thing you think to yourself is Oh, his haircut hasnât changed. In almost every class you share with him, Jongseong has made it a point to sit either next to you or right in front of you, so youâve spent a lot of time glaring at the back of his head. You wouldnât be surprised if he started developing two eye-shaped bald spots there. His hair is still short and spiky at the back and on the sides, longer on the top. When he lets it grow too long, it sometimes covers his eyes, and he obnoxiously keeps having to push it back like a heartthrob in an 80s movie.Â
Something like a memory flashes through your mind, blurry like those images you arenât sure came from a dream or from real life. Your surroundings are unclear, but Jayâs face is nestled against your neck, your hand in his hair. You can feel the softness of the close shave against your palm as clearly as if you were touching it right now. You ask him why heâs always kept it that way, and he replies that itâs simple to maintain. Then in classic Jay fashion, he adds, âAnd it makes me look awesome.â
Another memory, a clearer one, this timeâthis definitely happened. Itâs halfway through sophomore year, a random Tuesday, and Jay walks in, holding his head high and looking smugly around himself. The bastard got a new haircut. Long gone, his messy, unorganized flop of black hair that looked like it didnât know what it was doing; hello, sleek undercut. It accentuates all of his best features, which is terrible news for you. You had never even thought of Jongseong as someone having âbestâ features, but now theyâre being thrown in your face. His nose. His jawline. His smile.
It ruins your day, and a few after that. You canât quite put it into words when your friends ask whatâs wrong at lunchâor rather, you donât wanna face the humiliation of uttering something along the lines of âPark Jongseong looks good with his new haircut, and itâs bothering me.â
Here, itâs a familiar sight in an unfamiliar environment, the back of his head. Without really thinking, you take a step forward. Jongseong starts at the sound of your slippers against the marble floor tiles, but his face relaxes into a smile when he sees you.
âOh, itâs just you, honey. I thought you were sleeping.â
Just you. As if the two of you being in the same kitchen is normal. You guess it must be, to this version of Jongseong. To him, youâre not the annoying girl he strives to best in every classâyouâre honey.Â
âI was,â you say, walking around the kitchen island to join him by the sink. Something in you needs to look at him, really look at him, maybe pinch yourself or pinch him to be sure youâre not going crazy. Maybe you caught wafts of some ancient algae that lives in the well and made you hallucinate?
âI left a plate out for you in case you woke up. Made your favorite. The girls werenât so happy, seeing as itâs the third time this month,â he says with the special kind of smile reserved for parents talking about their children. The girls. A mention so casual, so obvious, your heart hurts. âBut I think I got it really right this time,â he continues. âHonestly, it might even be better than the original.â
He goes back to washing the dishes and you watch the sponge in his hands as it scrubs away tomato sauce, the soap as it runs from the plates into the sink. A knot forms in your stomach, something like a deep sadness that overwhelms you all of a sudden, and tears form in your eyes, threatening to fall any second.
When you havenât budged in almost a minute, Jongseong starts to say, in an intimate, almost worried voice, âArenât you going to eat, honey?â but when he sees your wet eyes, the tremble in your lower lip, he shuts the water immediately and dries his hands. With his thumbs, he wipes away the tears that have started falling from your eyes. âWhatâs wrong?â he whispers.
You canât reconcile the man in front of you with the image you have of the boy that torments you in every class you share. You canât reconcile the genuine concern in his voice with the snarky tone youâre met with every day. And yet, they respond to the same name, their features are identical, if not for the years that separate them, the stress of adulthood on one and the carefreeness of youth on the other.Â
Your body reacts automatically to the soft touchânever in a million years would you let the Jongseong you know come near you like this, but here, nothing feels more natural than his hands on your face, your shoulders, your hair, as though theyâre just as much his as they are yours. You realize the emotion in your stomach is not sadnessâtears fall, but youâre not sad. Youâve never felt as home as you do now, and if one thing romantic novels have taught you, is that this must be love.
You look up at the man in front of you, eyebrows furrowed as you search his face for confirmation or some sort of an answer. Thereâs a tremble in your voice when you speak next. âI just⌠I think I love you, Jongseong.â
He chuckles. âWell, we established that a while ago, didnât we? What with getting married and having kids. But Iâm glad you still feel that way.â
The mention of marriage and children doesnât faze you nearly as much as it should. Youâve only got one thing on your mind. âDo you love me too?â
You expect him to laughânot out of cruelty, but because the answer is so obvious, it almost doesnât deserve to be answered seriously. Like when your brother asks if he can have one more of your cookies and you tell him youâll cut his hand off. Sometimes you think itâs easier to be sarcastic than be unabashedly nice to someone. Especially with Jongseong, whom you donât expect kindness or patience from, you wait for him to stay something like, âNo, thatâs why Iâve stayed with you these eight years.âÂ
So when instead, he says, âMore than anything on this Earth,â voice low and vulnerable, tears flow even harder.Â
âSorry, itâs probably just my period,â you say through sobs, although you have no idea where in her menstrual cycle this version of you is.
Jongseong chuckles again, pressing a kiss to your forehead. âYou do get emotional around this time.â And you cry more, because you canât believe someone other than your mother knows you so well that they know what your period symptoms are.
Rubbing soothing circles against your back and whispering soft words in your ear, he holds you for as long as you need to calm down. When you finally do, he tells you to go sit on the couch, that heâll finish up the dishes then heat and bring your food for you. You think youâve got your emotions under control, but the moment you bite the pasta, cooked to perfection with the most succulent tomato sauce youâve ever had, sweet with a little kick of spice and a generous amount of parmesan cheese, tears start to fall again as if you had an endless stock of water behind your eyes.
âThis is so good,â you mumble.
Jongseong smiles, his gaze full of affection miraculously directed at you as he tucks away strands of your hair so they donât get in your eyes or in your food. âIâm glad, baby.â
You react to the nickname viscerally, words tumbling out of your mouth before you can even understand them. âYou havenât called me that in ages.â You widen your eyes at yourself, wondering how this was something you even knew. But when you look at Jongseong, all he does is smile more.
âYouâre right, I havenât. I guess I was reminded of college. You cried all the time back then. As much as it pained me, I canât say I wasnât happy to be the one you always came to for comfort.â
You havenât been through college yet, so you should be unable to tell whether this truly happened or notâand yet, the memories of the body youâre in all confirm what Jongseong just said. But it feels impossibleâgoing to university with him, letting yourself be vulnerable enough with him to not only cry in front of him but let him comfort you. Whatever could have happened in the years between the present you know and your time at university for things to change so drastically?
But before you can make sense of any of it, Jongseong speaks again. âWhy? Do you like it when I call you baby?â
Your stomach flips. Heat rises to your face at his words, the tone with which he said them, the things he was alluding toâyou know that having children means youâd popped your cherry at some point, that youâd had sex with Jongseong specifically, but to be confronted with the fact was something else.Â
âMaybe,â you mumble, and proceed to stuff your mouth with pasta so that you canât incriminate yourself further.
He puts on a recent movie, something you should arguably be paying attention to, since youâre literally getting a glimpse into the future of cinemaâyou could steal the idea, go back to your present and sell it for an outrageous price.
But Jongseongâs presence next to you makes it impossible to concentrate on anything but him. The warmth emanating from him, the scent of his perfume envelop you, give you a sense of just how real this all isâdespite how comfortable being with him like this feels, youâre still not convinced youâre not just in an unsettlingly vivid dream. You take one of his hands in yours, examining each finger, turning his hand over, tracing the lines of his palm, smoothing your thumb over his nailsâitâs an undeniably human hand. Warm against yours, slightly rough. Heâs started using hand cream, you think, all these winters when his dry hands would crack because of the cold coming up to your mind, teenage Jongseongâs hard refusal to wear any sort of cream to protect himself. Memories bob up to the surface: fixing his cracked hands up with a plaster, your tear falling on his hand, the both of you in your school uniforms in what looks like the school infirmary; awkwardly gifting him some hand cream the Christmas of that year, not looking at him as you hand him the small package. Saying, âItâs a waste of plasters for something that could be fixed so easily.â Him treating you to warm, spicy tteokbokki because he felt bad for not having gotten you anything, even though this was the first time either of you had ever given the other one a present.
As your fingers trail up from his hand to his forearm, his shoulder, his jawline, more memories flood your mind. Clumsy first kisses; squabbles of the kind you were already used to; lazy mornings in bed; hours spent in your kitchen or his, before you shared one, cooking dinner together; the way you felt when he proposed, a feeling so intense remembering it is almost unbearable now. Your eyes and fingers examine his face in detailâeven though youâve seen him almost every day since the start of high school, this feels like the first time you really perceive him. The delicate bow of his lips, the strong nose, the softness in his eyes when he looks at you. Your heart beats uncontrollably as you hold each otherâs gazes, but you feel inexplicably relaxed at the same time, two nearly opposing realities fighting each other inside of youâone in which you and Jongseong regarding each other with such affection is unthinkable, the other in which it is daily routine.
âMovie not to your taste?â he asks, voice gentle, breaking you out of your stupor.
âHm?â
He nods towards the TV screen. âI see youâre not paying much attention.â
âNo. I have⌠things on my mind.â
He raises an eyebrow, a smirk slowly growing on his lips. âYeah?â You think your heart might actually flatline when he brings you in closer to his chest, and, face buried in your hair, says, âYou know, Iâve been thinking that the twins might want a younger sibling to play with soon enoughâŚâ
Youâre not sure whether he actually wants a third child or if this is weird dirty talk that apparently turns parents onâall you know is that this is something future you will deal with, not high school senior you.Â
You whip up your head at him, eyes wide in panic that he mirrors immediately. âOrâor not. Later. Later?â You nod fervently, and the worry dissipates from his handsome features. âOkay, later,â he whispers, kissing the top of your head before returning his attention to the movie.Â
A couple hours later, youâre laying in bed in the dark togetherâyou can tell Jongseong is falling asleep by the regularity of his breathing and his stillness, but youâre wide awake. You donât know how youâve managed to spend all this time with him, acting like the wife he knows and loves, without imploding. But suddenly, the idea of waking up in your childhood bed, surrounded by your pink-and-white walls, going downstairs to be greeted by your brother and parents, sends a wave of panic through you. You havenât felt this comfortable in a long timeâJongseongâs arm draped over your waist, the fact that you could reach over and feel his skin against your palm if you wanted. You donât want to go back to a time where you hate him. In fact, you donât know if you could hate him after this.
âJongseong?â you say softly, the syllables unfamiliar on your tongue, even though the name rings brusquely through your head for the best part of every day.
It takes a few seconds, but he reacts eventually. âHm? Did you just call me Jongseong?â he murmurs sleepily, as if youâd just called him Robert or Christopher and not the name his own parents gave him.
âYeah.â
He chuckles. âNow thatâs something you havenât called me in ages. Makes me feel like youâre mad at me,â he says, turning over and burying his face in the crook of your neck. His hair tickles your skin, and one of your hands comes up reflexively to feel the softness of his close shave.
â...Jong?â you try.
âThatâs a step up, but not quite what I want,â he mumbles.
Youâre silent for a few moments. âHoney,â you say tentatively, voice a mere whisper.
âThatâs better.â You can hear the smile in his voice.
âWill you be here in the morning?â
âMh-hm. Itâs Saturday tomorrow.â
âNo,â you say, feeling out of breath. âI mean, will you be here?â
Youâre aware youâre not making much senseâand yet, Jongseong needs no further explanation. âOf course, baby,â he starts, voice soothing. âIâll be here tomorrow, and the day after that, and every day afterwards. âTil death do us part, remember?â
You let out a shaky breath. âOkay.â
âI love you, Y/N.â
âI love you, too,â you find yourself saying, and, more importantly, meaning. Itâs the last thing either of you says before falling asleep.
--
Tears are streaming down your face when you wake up the next day. When you open your eyes, pink and white obnoxiously stare back at you. The clock reads 7:12, just three minutes before your alarm goes off, and unfortunately for high school you, the night hasnât given in to Saturday morningâitâs Tuesday, and you have to go to school and act as if you hadnât just had the weirdest, most realistic dream of your life. You donât even get a weekend to shake this weird feeling in your stomach off, youâre going to have to face Park Jongseong full force. At least, this will become your friendsâ favorite bit for the foreseeable future.
Theyâre already sitting in the classroom when you get there, animatedly chatting to each other. You plop down in your seat in front of them, and when they see the sullen look on your face, ask you whatâs wrong.
âDid you wake up during the night to play Hay Day again?â Kazuha asks, eyebrows knotted with genuine worry.
âIâm not that person anymore,â you reply. âNo, I just had a really weird dream. More like a nightmare, really. It feels like I didnât get any sleep.â
âWhat was it about?â Sunoo asks.
Your eyes dart back-and-forth between the two of them as you brace yourself for their reactions. Not wanting anyone else to overhear, you lean in conspiratorially. They mirror you. âI was married to Park Jongseong,â you whisper. As expected, they burst into laughter immediately, and you lean back in your seat, crossing your arms in annoyance. âItâs not funny.â
âItâs very funny,â Kazuha retorts. âItâs ironic, even, considering how much you hate the guy.â
âExactly!â
âBut I guess even you know how ridiculous it is that you hate him, if your brain is able to imagine yourself being married to him,â Sunoo adds, shrugging. âItâs a good reminder that youâre literally the only person in this school with a vendetta against him.â
Kazuha nods energetically. âHe picked up a pen for me, once. Heâs a nice guy.â
You look around the room in panic. âKeep it down, will you?â you hush, despite the fact that no one is paying any attention to the three of you. You sigh, resolving yourself to telling them the entire truth. âBut guys, Iâm scared. I think this might be a sign.â
Their eyebrows perk up. âA sign that your hatred of him has actually been disguising a crush this entire time?â Sunoo asks, feigning innocence.
âNoâwhat? Where did you get that idea?â
âNowhere. Go on.â
âWhatever. Come here,â you say, gesturing for them to huddle again. âItâs the well.â
âOh my God, Y/N, youâve actually lost it,â Kazuha says, fascinated by your stupidity.
âIâm not going to tolerate any well slander, this is serious. I just wanted it to reassure me that there was someone out there for me. And then I had that stupid dream.â
Kazuha and Sunoo exchange a look like theyâre parents trying to announce to their daughter that sheâs adopted. âY/NâŚâ Sunoo starts.
âThis is crazy. Like, love philters and writing Park Sunghoonâs name a hundred times are one thing, this isâŚâ
âCrazy,â Sunoo said, nodding along. âThis is crazy. Thereâs no other word for it. Your eighteen years of boyfriendlessness have finally caught up to you.â
âYou guys donât get it. What about that time I asked it to give me a good grade on our Literature exam and I literally came first out of our class? Or when I told it I missed Jung Hae-in and his military discharge announcement came the next day?â you say, aware that the look in your eyes is only confirming their suspicionsâbut you need someone to believe you, or at the very least understand you.
âOne, youâre a good student. Two, that was pure coincidence,â Sunoo explains.
âBut girl, if you want to marry Jay, thatâs fine. Youâve got our blessing,â Kazuha says, shrugging.
âYeah. He picked up her pen, once,â Sunoo adds.
âAnd you know, you guys clearly have some sort of chemistry.â
You scoff. âIf you think that him refuting my every word and finding every opportunity to make fun of me, then yeah, I guess you could say we have chemistry.â
âYou guys have banter,â Kazuha says as if itâs obvious.
âOh, please. Banter is cute. I want to kill him every time he opens his mouth.â
Your friends both roll their eyes. âWhile I understand that most men are better off staying quietâno offense, Sunooââ
âNone taken.â
âYou have to admit Jay is not nearly as insufferable as you make him out to be,â Kazuha says.
âAre you kidding me? Heâs always acting like a child. Rubbing it in my face when he gets a better grade, trying to start arguments for no reason, sucking up to teachers, stealing my erasers, for Godâs sake, youâd think heâs twelve. I know that Iâm not on the majority's side, but I seriously cannot understand how other people tolerate him at all.â
Sunoo sighs. âBecause heâs nice to everyone. He never hesitates to help people, heâs even funny, sometimes, andâwell, look at him.â He nods his head towards the door, and when you turn around, Jongseong is indeed walking in the classroom. âHeâs not a bad-looking boy.â
âGosh, Sunoo, maybe you should marry him,â Kazuha says, but since you laid your eyes on Jongseong, youâve stopped listening.
You feel weird. You look at him, and you feel weird. Itâs the same feeling you had during your sleep last night, a feeling that paralyzes you from head to toe, that starts in your stomach and spreads to your entire body, weighs you down in your chair.Â
âHey, guys,â he greets simply, and his voice wraps itself around your heart and squeezes. You canât do anything but watch him as he takes his seat next to you, plopping his bag on the table and taking his notebook out. He looks at you, watches you watching him, then swivels around in his chair.
âWhatâs wrong with her?â he asks your friends.
âShe had a dream that she mââ
âDo not finish that sentence, Zuha, if you want to live to see another day.â
âYes, maâam,â she replies, a satisfied little smile on her lips.
Despite yourself, youâre still staring at Jongseong, trying to figure out what the hell these emotions are that are raging up a storm inside of you. Instead of ignoring you, he turns to face you, resting his elbow on the table and his chin in his palm as he stares back at you, smirking. âWhatâs up, Y/N? Has it finally dawned on you how devastatingly handsome I am?â he asks, and you frown, because heâs not so far off from the truth.
âPlease, kids, itâs 9 a.m., donât flirt right in front of us,â Sunoo says, despair in his voice.
âSheâs the one who started it,â Jongseong replies, still looking at you, his smirk growing.
For some reason, this startles you out of your trance, and you look away from him like youâve been burned, preoccupying yourself instead with your notes for this class. âIn your dreams, Jongseong,â you mumble.
âMore like in yours,â Kazuha says, her and Sunoo giggling.
âZuha!â you exclaim. Jongseong looks at you with raised eyebrows, and with his infuriating capacity to put two and two together, youâre scared heâs figured out what she meant, but youâre literally saved by your teacher who walks in at that moment and starts the class.Â
The second the bell rings to signify the end of the class, you hurriedly pack your things and mutter an excuse about needing the bathroom, trying to get as far away as possible from the boy whose all-too familiar scent had messed with your thoughts all class, whose every brush of his arm against yours had made your heart race uncontrollably.
--
It hadnât just been a dream. It couldnât have been.
Just like there was no doubt the 28-year-old Jongseong from last night had once been the annoying boy you knew, the 18-year-old Jongseong was sure to one day become the husband of your dreams. A devoted partner and father, his presence comforting, his good looks indeed devastating, unwavering.
There was no mistake to be made. The well had worked its magic.
Whether you liked it or not, you would end up marrying Park Jongseong. You, of all people; him, of all people.
Was there already something of your future husband in the boy that snickered when you mixed up your genders in German class, or would he one day spring out of nowhere? Apparently, youâd be around to find out.
But for now, how to act around him? It felt unfair that you were privy to this knowledge of your shared future while he was ignorant of it. Blissfully, perhaps. You couldnât imagine that he would rejoice much at this news.
Your mind is somewhere else the entire day. At lunch, your other friends try to get the thing thatâs obviously bothering you out of you, but Kazuha and Sunoo are there to tell them not to bother. Youâd needed to tell someone about it, but you donât want the entire school to know about your marital premonitions. The two knuckleheads you call your best friends are already doing a good enough job teasing you about itââThereâs your husband, Y/N,â when Jongseong walks past; âSo have you thought of baby names? Kayleigh and Mackayleigh, perhaps?â unsolicited, during Physics. You turn around to check on the culprit â because yes, Jongseong is the culprit here, you, a mere a victim â and when he notices you staring, nods at you as if to say, Whatâs your problem?, trying to look threatening in his white lab coat thatâs three sizes too big and protective goggles.
It doesnât help that Jongseong has a way of hovering around you. Even in classes in which your teachers assigned the seats for you, heâs never far from your seat. The two of you sit next to each other in German, your last class every Monday, Tuesday and Thursday. But today, the seat next to you is emptyâwhat wouldâve been a cause for celebration just yesterday is now a source of worry. Youâd seen him just two hours ago in your previous class together, so where the hell was he now? Heâs lucky that your teacher is an old German lady who always spends the first ten minutes of the lesson rambling about something in dialectal German no one understands but nods along to anyway. When he walks into the room, five minutes late, she just says, âHallo, Jay,â and continues with her story. Itâs about her first school trip to Berlin when she was fifteen and the country was still divided. You think.
He winks at you when he takes his seat and you roll your eyes. You pretend to listen to your teacher for thirty seconds, then hit him gently with your elbow. âWhere were you?â you ask without looking at him.
He doesnât answer immediately, probably surprised you initiated a non-hostile conversation with him for once. âI was just hanging out with my friends, something you clearly wouldnât understand.â
And your friends wondered why you hated him?
âStill having imaginary friends at eighteen is really concerning, Jongseong. You should see someone about it.â
When you glance at him, heâs already looking right at you, smiling. Youâve never felt so conscious of your side profile.Â
âWhy? Were you worried?â he whispers, kicking your foot with his.
You look at him, horrifiedâwhere the hell had he gotten that idea? How was he so spot-on? You scoff, trying to diffuse the tension inside yourself. âNo.â
He kicks your foot again. âI was five minutes late and you started to worry?â
âNo. Stop.â
âI didnât know you cared about me so much, Y/N.â
This time, you give him a harsh look, one that lets him know you really mean your wordsââStop it.â Finally, he relents, getting the assigned homework out now that the teacher has actually started the lesson. Your face softensâhe looks hurt. Guilt tugs at your heartstrings.
Despite what you might say, you like the way things are with Jongseong. If some people always need to be crushing on someone, you always need to have someone you perceive as an enemyâit was Na Jaemin in elementary school, because heâd once made fun of your incapability to climb the monkey bars; Shin Ryujin, in middle school, for kissing your crush during a game of spin-the-bottle at your own birthday party; Park Jongseong, since freshman year, for simply existing. Your reasons for disliking him are trivial, youâll admit. You werenât sure you could even place a finger on what had first triggered your disdain towards himâone too many awful jokes, one too many times raising his hand in class and rattling off a perfect answer, then looking around himself proudly, one too many roars of laughter heard throughout the entire cafeteria. The fact that no one else seemed to be bothered by him only added to your aggravation. He just got on your nerves, and it seemed that you openly showing your dislike of him â him, who was so used to being loved by everyone around him, pampered by his family, praised by his teachers, popular among his peers â was enough to make him dislike you, too. So, after a few failed attempts at trying to be your friend, because Jongseong was unable to not be friends with everyone he met, he didnât simply give up.Â
If he couldnât be your friend, then fine, heâd be your enemy.
At least, thatâs how it appears to you, still now. Itâs never gone dangerously far, but if thereâs an opening to tease you or get on your nerves, heâll do it. Not passing you the ball during soccer, or conversely, only aiming for you during dodgeball, not sharing his textbook with you when you forgot it unless you beg, loudly clearing his throat when you speak in class. And, lately, pouring salt on your wounds in the form of reminding you how impossible you and Jake Sim are. His motto must be if thereâs a will, thereâs a way. And when it comes to making your life hell, his will is infinite.
Everything is upside-down now. The question of how your relationship can possibly go from this to that obsesses you. It feels like youâre more capable of sharing a funeral, dying at each othersâ hands, than a wedding.Â
âJong, your textbook.â
He squints at you. âFunny how Iâm Jongseong when you hate me, Jong when you need a textbook,â he says, sliding his book closer to himself.
âItâs not my fault your name is a mouthful,â you retort, trying to pull it back to the middle of the table, but heâs quicker than you.
âThen maybe you should call me Jay, like everyone else on Earth.â
âWhereâs the fun in that? Now give it here. Please?â you ask, mustering your best smile. Any other teacher wouldâve scolded the two of you by now, but Ms. Schumacher is peacefully going on about the importance of word order and punctuation in the German sentence, oblivious to her two students bickering in the back row. Jongseong usually never sits at the back of the classroomâonly here.
He gives in, smiling back, but thereâs something behind it, something that tells you nothing good is brewing in his brain. âOnly because youâre so pretty.â
Normally, this kind of remark wouldâve warranted a slap on the arm or an array of insults, but if today is anything, it is not normal. You look at him like youâve been stung, visions of your not-dream coming to you in flashes like youâre the titular character on Thatâs So Ravenâthe affection in your husbandâs eyes, the kindness in his words, the sincerity in his smile. Again, youâre left to wonder if this man is already taking root inside of the boy next to you, if Jongseongâs future capacity to love you presently exists in his heart.
Does your future capacity to love him already exist in your heart?
You watch as his smirk softens into a grin, your flusteredness and lack of a response clearly amusing him, then as he circles the exercises Ms. Schumacher is assigning for the lesson. She seems to have forgotten there was homework dueâJongseong will be sure to remind her of it quickly.
He kicks your foot again, tells you to focus. His ears have turned red.
You wonder if those capacities havenât existed from the start.
--
As much as you love a good friends-to-lovers story, characters hiding their feelings out of fear of ruining the friendship have never failed to frustrate you â just tell her, you dummy, itâs obvious she likes you too â and yet, youâve never related more than now.
Whatever it is that you and Jongseong have, you donât want to lose it. It adds entertainment to your otherwise average life.Â
âGood thing she didnât pick on you while we went over the homework, âcause you clearly put zero effort in. And I wouldnât have helped you, even if youâd asked, by the way.â
You hum absent-mindedly as you put your notebook and pencil holder in your bag. Are you sure that these are even your feelings in the first place? Just because the well put a silly idea in your head doesnât mean you have to believe it like itâs scripture. If what you saw is real, then it will happen in its own time. Things donât have to start changing right this instant.
âGosh, Y/N, whatâs up with you today? Youâre so boring,â Jongseong continues, following you out of the classroom.Â
âJust tired,â you reply. Wouldnât it be unnatural if you were to radically alter the way you behave with Jongseong? Love should come about organically. Sure, his presence has always provoked some kind of reaction within you, but thatâs usually been annoyance. Whether heâs stealing the fifth eraser youâve bought that month or running on the soccer field, beads of sweat running down his temples, hair sticking out everywhere, victoriously smiling when his team scoresâyouâre annoyed. Whether heâs sticking up his hand higher than yours or going to the school dance with Ahn Yujinâyouâre annoyed. When you learned that sheâd been his neighbor since infancy and that she had a boyfriend, who went to another school and only trusted Jongseong to take her to the dance, you were still annoyedâthis time at yourself for feeling even the tiniest bit relieved that nothing was going on between them.
And this â his quick steps trying to keep up with yours, his dumb story about yogurt coming out of Heeseungâs nose today at lunch when they were laughing too hard â yes, youâre still annoyed. But you realize youâre not annoyed at him.
Youâre annoyed at how he makes you feel.
âY/N?â he says, but youâre too deep in your thoughts, only vaguely registering the sound until he repeats it, louder this time, and grabs your hand, making you abruptly stop walking. âAre you sure everythingâs okay?â he asks with genuine concern in his voice. âYouâre barely listening to me. I mean, itâs not like you usually really do, but youâd have told me to get lost, like, five minutes ago nowâŚâ
He chuckles self-deprecatingly, but despite his words, youâre focusing on something else yet again. His hand on yours, his loose hold on your fingers. Your brain is yelling at youâhold his hand, hug him. Itâs like there are still traces of the 28-year-old version of you you visited yesterday, urging you to behave like her and not 18-year-old you.Â
So, the well had let you know that you need not look much further to find what you wanted. Here it is, in the form of a boy you have convinced yourself you hated, and hated you, and yet, heâs holding your hand, asking you if youâre okay, worry knotting his eyebrows together.Â
Hold his hand. Hug him. Instead, you retract your hand, let it fall limply by your side. Jongseongâs eyebrows shoot up.
Heâs so close, the supposed love of your life. You donât know how to reach out to him.
For now, you smile. âGet lost, Jong.â
--
you guys how the hell do i act around jongseong now that i know our fates are romantically intertwined
kazuha i think not treating him like the number one public enemy would be a good start
you so what⌠be nice to him? how do i do that
sunoo oh my god y/n when she has to treat another person like a regular human being
you heâs not just another person!
sunoo okayyyyy i see you little miss repressed feelings
you i hate u
kazuha just donât roll your eyes at everything he says anymore and donât start arguments for no reason
you heâs the one who starts them⌠but okay iâll try
--
âLetâs pair up for the reading analysis today. You can stay with your deskmate or pick a partner, I donât mind as long as you get the work done. Iâm talking about you, Chaewon and Yuri. This is English class, not a gossip session.â
The second your English teacher has finished speaking, Jongseong swivels in his chair. âLetâs partner up, Y/N?â
âWhat about me?â Jake asks, eyes darting back-and-forth between the two of you.
âYou can partner up with Minju,â Jongseong replies, pointing to the girl heâs usually seated next to. âLook. You guys will be great together. Say hi, Minju.â Minju waves shyly at Jake, braces on display as she smiles ecstatically. Itâs not everyday that she gets to talk to one of the most popular guys in school.
Jake reluctantly switches seats with him, glancing back at you and Jongseong who just grins at him, fake friendliness plastered on his lips, until he turns around again. Your new partnerâs smile softens and reaches his eyes when he looks at you. âHi.â
You have to look awayâyou feel your face burn under his gaze. âHi, Jong.â
He tilts his head. âWhat? Do you hate me so much that you canât even look at me now?â he asks, and you canât tell whether heâs joking or genuine.
You frown. âI donât hate you.â
âOh? Thatâs a recent development.â
âI guess,â you mumble after a few seconds. Is it really? You suddenly canât remember if you ever really hated him, or if youâd exaggerated your own feelings.
His smile widens. âWell, good. I mean, you were going to have to realize at some point that I really am funny, smart, endearing, handsome-â
âBack to hating.â
âLetâs start the assignment.â
You agree on reading the passage first, but you realize halfway through that not a single word has been absorbed. âHey. Why did you switch seats with him?â you ask, whispering so as not to be overheard.
Jongseong shrugs. âI thought you wouldnât want to work with him, consideringâŚâ
âRight.â Youâre silent again, but only for a bit. âWhatâs it to you?â you mumble.Â
He scoffs. âSorry for trying to be considerate.â
âThatâs notââ
âLetâs just focus on this.â
His sudden coldness vexes you. You know you should let it go â donât start arguments for no reason, and all that â and you know itâs childish, but you canât help yourself. You have certain reflexes youâre not particularly proud of when it comes to one Park Jongseong. âLetâs just focus on this,â you repeat, mocking his grumbling tone of voice and shaking your head like a puppet.
He glares at you. âCan you not act like a toddler for once?â
âCan you not be a dick for once?â you bite back.
âY/N, Jongseong, Iâm sure youâre having a fascinating conversation on the use of chiaroscuro in the text?â your teacher asks, a look of warning on his face.
âYes, sir,â you reply, embarrassed.
âYes, so much chiaroscuro,â Jongseong mumbles, resting his cheek on his knuckles. When the teacher has turned away, he kicks your foot. âSee, youâre getting us in trouble.â
âDo you even know what chiaroscuro is?âÂ
He hesitates. âThatâs not the problem here. You are.â
âWell, maybe if you didnât-â
âY/N, Jay, final warning.â
âSorry,â you both say at the same time. With one last glare at each other, you finally get to work.
So your plan to start getting along with Jongseong isnât in full-force yet. On the drive back home that afternoon, you reassure yourself that these things take time. When the moment is right, the two of you will grow closer.
--
But increasingly, it feels as though the right moment will never come.
Two months have passed since your visit to the well, and things between you and Jongseong have not changed. Not really, at least.
You still bicker like cat and dog â it goes without saying that youâre the cute puppy and heâs the heartless cat â and he gets as much on your nerves as ever, especially now that you know that the potential to be nice to you, to love you, even, exists somewhere inside him. Somewhere deeply hidden perhaps, but somewhere nonetheless. Of course, after telling yourself that what must come will come of its own accord, you havenât done much to change the dynamic between the two of you. But if you used to see your retaliations against him as necessary to your survival, you now find some sort of enjoyment in themâsome might call it Stockholm Syndrome, you perceive it as a step in the right direction. Youâve followed one of Kazuhaâs pieces of advice: you donât roll your eyes at him anymore, simply because you donât feel the need to. You argue with him with a smile on your face, his attempts at insulting or annoying you have started to make you laugh.
He doesnât say anything but seems to gladly welcome this change. If you get a lower grade than him on a test, he doesnât try to stick the knife in further, but genuinely offers to go over it with you later. If you give in after two hours of tearing your hair out over a German exercise and text him for help, he doesnât make fun of you. If he says something particularly arrogant or makes a really bad joke, all you need to do is give him a look, and heâll mumble an apology.Â
Could it have been like this the entire time? you wonder, watching him across the schoolyard as he and Heeseung hunt for PokĂŠmon. Just a couple months ago, you wouldâve scrunched your nose at the sight, making fun of him for his childish interests. Now, you notice the way he laughs, audible all the way to where you sit with Kazuha and Sunoo, the way he jumps excitedly and points at things only he and his friend see, and all you feel is endearment.
âLook at you, look at that,â Sunoo says as he hits you on the forehead with his metal spoon, startling you. He tuts. âYouâve got love dripping from your eyes, sweetie.â
âSunoo, thatâs disgusting.â
âLove? I know.â
âNo, your spoon. Your salivaâs all over that,â you say, and all he does is eat another mouthful of his yogurt while staring wide-eyed right at you. When you look back at Jongseong, heâs high-fiving Heeseung. You wonder which creature heâs caught now. In the library yesterday, he spent thirty minutes showing you every single one he had captured so far instead of revising for the upcoming Physics test.
âYeah, we know youâd like someone elseâs saliva more,â Kazuha chimes in, and the two of them snort.
âItâs not like that,â you say, biting into an apple slice.
âOh yeah? Whatâs it like, then?â Kazuha asks.
âWeâre⌠becoming friends,â you say, but youâre not sure who youâre trying to convince more.
âY/N, Iâve had to watch the two of you giggling to yourselves in the library one too many times to believe youâre friends. I know your homeworkâs not that funny,â Sunoo argues.
âFriends can giggle with each other!â you exclaim, but your friends are inflexible.
âI would tell you to get yourself together if you giggled at me like that,â he says.
âI saw you twirl your hair the other day,â Kazuha adds.
âI neverâWhen?!â
She shrugs. âThe other day.â
You deflate, crushed under your friendsâ accusations. âI wouldnât twirl my hairâŚâ you mumble. You decide to busy yourself with your apple slices, not even bothering to find out what Kazuha and Sunoo start snickering and elbowing each other about.
âHey,â a familiar voice greets, making you look up. Jongseong smiles at you and steals an apple slice from your tupperware as he sits down next to you, Heeseung across from him.
âHi, Jong,â you say, sitting up straighter. You offer a piece of fruit to Heeseung but he declines, saying he doesnât like apples without peanut butter.
In front of you, your friends exchange a look, and youâre immediately terrified of what theyâll do next. Leaning in, they place their elbows on the table, and Kazuha starts them off. âJay, you and Y/N know each other pretty well, right?â
Jongseong glances at you, eyes wide. âUh, sure.â
âHave you ever noticed her, say, twirling her hair?â Sunoo asks, tilting his head innocently at the poor boy by your side.
Youâve never seen him look so confused. âUm, yeah, she does that when sheâs concentrating on something, sometimesâŚâ
They lean back. âHuh,â Kazuha says, studying Jongseongâs face.
âInteresting. Very interesting,â Sunoo says, slowly nodding.
You glare at your friends. âSee, thatâs different,â you tell them. âI was concentrating on something, not doing⌠whatever you guys had in mind.â
Jongseong looks at you. âWhat did they have in mind?â
You answer before either of them can dig your grave any deeper. âNothing. Itâs nothing. We were just having a stupid conversation.â You muster your most convincing smile, and the subject is finally dropped.
No one says anything for a few moments, until Heeseung decides to speak up: âYou shouldâve seen Jay earlier, Y/N. He caught this super rare version of Pikachu earlier, it was awesome.â
âDudeâŚâ Jongseong murmurs.
âWhat?â Heeseung asks, his enthusiasm quickly dissolving into confusion. Jongseong just shakes his head. Thankfully for all of you, the bell rings then, and you head to class. The three of them walk in front of you while you and Jongseong fall back a step.
âWhy were you guys sitting outside? Itâs freezing today,â he asks you. Walking side-by-side like this, you canât help but notice the inches he has over you, the broadness of his shoulders in comparison to yours.
âThey turned the heat way too high in the cafeteria, so we came outside for some fresh air,â you explain. Heâs right, the air is chilly todayâitâs a few days into December, and the temperatures have been accordingly low.
âArenât you cold?â
Your heart skips a beat. One of the side effects of not being at each otherâs throat anymore was that you got more and more often to be privy to this side of Jongseongâattentive, considerate, kind. What you once thought were his moral attempts at not being so mean to you all the time, you found out was actually his real nature. He wasnât a prick who was sometimes nice, he was a nice person who turned into a prick with you. Whether the fault lay on him or you was another debate.
âNo, Iâm alright,â you say, but your body decides to betray you and makes you sneeze three times in a row.
âBless you,â Jongseong says, laughing. âHere.â You try to stop him, pushing his hands away, but he takes his gloves off and forces them in your palms.
âIâm going to be inside for the next four hours, Jong, Iâll be fine. Keep them.â
âNo, itâs okay. Just so you can warm up quicker.â
You eventually give in, putting the gloves over your hands, laughing at the extra fabric that hangs off the tip of your fingers. But when you look at Jongseongâs now-bare hands, something catches your attention. Stopping in the hallway, you grab one of them, examining the cuts on his knuckles. âYou need to wear hand cream, Jong, your hands are too chapped.â
He lets you turn his hand over, smooth over his skin, do the same thing with his other hand. âMen donât wear hand cream,â he says, a grin on his lips.
You burst out laughing. âI think thatâs the stupidest thing Iâve ever heard you say.â
âSeriously, though, I donât like the way it feels. Too sticky.â
âYou just need to get a quick-absorption one.â Then, you make the terrible mistake of looking up from his hand and meeting his eyesâyou gasp silently, his gaze and soft smile transporting you right back to that night, the images of 28-year-old and 18-year-old Jongseong mixing into each other, becoming indistinct from each other. Your gaze drifts down to his lips â chapped, too, when theyâre usually plumper, rosier â and his hand, still in yours, balls into a fist. The second bell rings and you both take a step back, eyes meeting again for a brief moment before looking down at the floor. With uncharacteristically shy, embarrassed words of parting, you make your separate ways to your next classes.
âThat was beautiful, Y/N,â Sunoo says, waiting for you by the door, and you walk past him without so much as a glance.
âI donât wanna talk about it.â
--
sunoo jay and y/n almost kissed earlier
kazuha WHAAAAT
you KIM SUNOO.
kazuha WHEN?????
sunoo right before class after the lunch break y/n was sooo embarrassed afterwards lol
you we did NOT almost kiss youâre talking out of your ass
kazuha i canât believe i missed this fml
you YOU DIDNT MISS ANYTHING NOTHING HAPPENED
sunoo be serious u guys weâre standing inches apart
you were* and no we werenât
sunoo oh stfu it was autocorrect i saw it w my own eyes y/n⌠you WERE literally holding his hand and staring into those beautiful eyes of his
kazuha sunoo�
sunoo what canât a man acknowledge another manâs objective attractiveness if i was y/n i wouldâve folded the moment i saw him
you literally one of the first times he talked to me was to make fun of my handwriting
sunoo yeah heâs on his tsundere shit i fw it
you âŚ
sunoo anyways zuha you shouldve seen it when the bell rang they practically leaped away from each other and u didnt know what to do w yourselves afterwards likeeee it was so obvi what you both were thinking of
kazuha cuuuute
you i resent these accusations.
sunoo istg if u dont kiss him next time i will
kazuha ???
you SUNOO?
sunoo WHAT
--
Something happens a few days before the start of winter break.
Ms. Schumacher is absent, gone off to Germany to visit her family thereâshe has enough seniority in the school that they let her abandon her responsibilities as a teacher once in a while. A week is too short a period of time for them to bother finding a substitute. Itâs usually your last class of the day, but you have to wait around for your dad to be done working, so while most of your classmates have gone home early, you sit with about six other people in the unsupervised study room, absent-mindedly jotting down tid-bits of dialogue for your new story idea, too preoccupied with Jongseongâs absence to really pay attention to anything else. Itâs fifteen minutes after the hour, but heâs nowhere to be found, although you know for a fact that he takes those weird Molecular Gastronomy cooking classes your Chemistry teacher offers for extra credit every Thursday after school, so he should be here. And anyways, if heâd gone home, he wouldâve texted you something like, Have fun sitting around for an hour, Iâm gonna go do awesome stuff with Heeseung, even if awesome stuff meant playing Mario Kart or drinking Sprite and holding a two-person burping contest.
Youâre so engrossed in your own thoughts that you pay no mind to the sudden ding of a phone in the room, followed by some gasps and heated whispers. The exchanged words go through one ear and out the otherâThere was a fight? In the locker rooms? It must be bad if they were sent to the nurse before the principal⌠Huh? Over who? So he took both of them on? Damn, I didnât know Jay got like that. He seems so well-behaved.
Your head whips up at the mention of your friendâs name. âJay? Did something happen to him?â you ask out loud, the whispers dying down immediately as everybody stares at you.Â
Gaeul, who was in your class last year, is the only one who answers you. Holding up and waving her phone, she says, âThey say he got into a fight.â
Jongseong? A fight? It sounds like a practical joke. He admitted to you he once started crying watching Heeseung playing Call of Duty, it was so violent. You shake your head. âHe-he did? With who?â
Gaeul and the girl next to her exchange a concerned, almost guilty look. âJake and Sunghoon.â The crease between your eyebrows deepened. You donât need to ask anything else before she adds, âTheyâre at the nurseâs station. It sounds pretty badâŚâ
Thatâs enough for you to leap out of your chair and run to the nurseâs station. It seems the news has spread impossibly quickly among your year groupâeven Kazuha and Sunoo are already blowing your phone, asking you if youâve heard, if you know how Jay is. You ignore them, reminding yourself to text them back later, until one message from Sunoo in particular catches your attention: It apparently started because Sunghoon said something about you, Y/N. Theyâre saying Jay got angry.
The nurse is busy on the phone when you get there, her back to the entrance, so youâre able to slip in unnoticed. You head to the adjoining room where the beds are, all three of them takenâyou walk by Sunghoon first, his arms crossed over his chest and pointedly not looking at you, then by Jake, who calls out your name. You glare at him and pull on the white plastic curtain that separates his bed from Jongseongâs. Theyâre already going to hear you, you donât need them seeing you on top of that.Â
Jongseong sits up with a grunt when you appear at the end of his bed. The sight of him makes your stomach flip, and not in a good way, for onceâhis left eye is swollen and circled by a deep purple bruise, shiny with ointment, thereâs a cut on his cheek, his lower lip is busted, his right hand is wrapped in bandages. âOh my God,â you whisper as you help him up, voice breaking. He stares at his hands, jaw locking when you gently place one palm on his good hand, the other on the side of his face, moving it this way and that so you can take a better look at his injuries. He winces, and you let go, resting your hand on his shoulder instead. âWhat the hell got into you?â you whisper vehemently, unable to decide if youâre worried or angry or both as tears form in your eyes.
He tries to shrug, but even that seems to hurt. âDonât shrug, Jongseong, tell me what happened.â
âIâm Jongseong again now?â he says, attempting a smile, but only one corner of his lips rises.
You sigh. Even in this state, he has to be a smart-ass. âYouâre Jong when I need a textbook, Jongseong when you get into stupid fights,â you reply, and he smiles wider but immediately winces, hand coming up to the cut on his lip. You notice that his hand is still riddled with cracks, and whether theyâre due to their dryness or to this fight doesnât matterââWait here,â you say, and go rummage through some drawers for plasters. âShe forgot some spots.â You feel Jongseongâs eyes on your face as you patch him up to the best of your abilities.
âI donât want to tell you what happened. Iâll do the job of hating these idiots for the both of us, so donât concern yourself with them,â he says, apparently not caring that the idiots in question can hear his every word.
He keeps his promiseâyou never hear another word from him about the cause of the fight.Â
Later, you find out through other means, namely Sunooâs questionably remarkable ability to unearth any and all gossip, that in the locker rooms after Phys Ed, someone had started Jake on the topic of Yunjin, who had been recently revealed as his girlfriend. Theyâd apparently kept it secret because it was just fooling around at first, and only later had gotten serious enough for them to parade around the school as the couple.Â
It had been an unremarkable conversation until Jake said, âYou guys know Y/N from our class? She saw us in the staff parking lot once, and I was sure weâd be busted then. But she didnât tell anyone.â And just like that, the conversation turned to you, someone who was usually never a topic among these boys, jocks, soccer players, âthe kind of people who peak in high school and still have a superiority complex at forty,â as Sunoo describes them.Â
He has a harder time explaining what happened next, canât quite look you in the eye as he recounts what was said. âSo, this is what they say, apparently someone said that you used to be obsessed with Sunghoon, then with Jake, and Sunghoon said you⌠Well, he said you were pathetic, that asshole, and that you had been so easy to lead on, then Jake joined in, saying the same things, basically, how funny it was seeing you so obviously in love with him when he would never give you a chanceâŚâ He looks at you worriedly, but you tell him to go on. âAnd so thatâs when Jay got up and just straight-up punched Jake in the face. And while Jake was trying to figure out what happened, Jay punched Sunghoon, and then they both got on him, pushing him, but when he wouldnât stop throwing punches, they started fighting, too. I think they all got some good ones in before the other boys were able to break them apart and the P.E. teacher arrivedâŚâ
But that would be later. Now, sitting with Jongseong in the nurseâs station, tears falling onto the plasters you place on his hand, nothing matters but him. You donât need the detailsâheâs hurt, he got hurt over you, you feel as though every cut on his body may well have been done by your own hand. Youâve never felt so guilty for something you didnât do. Your voice trembles when you speak; youâre unable to look at him, at his busted eye. âI just donât want you to get hurt for me.â
Without missing a beat, he says, âWhat else would I get hurt for?â
You can only meet his eyes for a split second. Even like this, he manages to look at you with the same softness that has haunted you since the night you met 28-year-old Jongseong, that has rendered all thoughts of anything other than him meaningless since the day your gaze drifted down to his lips just weeks ago. âJongâŚâ is all you can mutter as you look down at your hands holding each othersâ, your lips trembling.
He raises his bandaged hand, still not used to his dominant side being ineffective for now, then lowers it when he realizes. Clumsily, he pats your hair with his left hand. âDonât cry, pleaseâŚâ
Jakeâs head pops out from behind the curtain. âY/N, Iâm really sorryââ
âNot right now, man,â Jay quickly interrupts. Jake pathetically disappears behind the curtain again.
âJust promise me you wonât do this again.â
âY/NâŚâ
âPromise me,â you say, more demanding this time, sticking out your pinky finger. Jay, hesitant, looks between your outstretched finger and your face a few times, but eventually gives in.
The nurse, upon coming to check on the boys, catches you with Jongseong and chases you out immediately. You sulk back to study hall, where everyoneâs head perks up the moment you walk in. âTheyâre okay,â you reassure vaguely, and unenthusiastically answer their many questions. Itâs only a few minutes until the bell rings, and youâre free to go then.
--
jong so⌠guess who got a five-day suspension
you you idiot what did your parents say?
jong theyâre not happy i have to do all the household chores for a month
you boo-hoo
jong not sure why i came here thinking iâd get some comfortâŚ
you ⌠are you feeling better?
jong a little bit the nurse gave us some really strong painkillers but iâm okay because thereâs a pretty girl thatâs going to drop off the homework for me after school every day :)
you oh did you ask chaewon to do that?
jong um no i was talking about you ..if thatâs okay
you haha i know i just wanted you to say it straight up
jong ykw maybe i should just ask chaewon
you iâll see you tomorrow jong!!
jong :) see you tomorrow prettyÂ
 --
The months that separate your return to school and graduation come and go in the blink of an eye. Jongseong canât come to school the last day before the holidays or the first four days after, and heâs grounded in-between. Things change bit by bit with every day you visit himâTo give him the homework, you tell his parents, although there isnât much to do when the semester isnât in full swing, and you couldâve easily sent him pictures. The first time, you spend more time scouring the pictures and trinkets in his room than actually talking to him, and awkwardly give him a half-hug when he tells you he wonât be able to hang out at all during the break before practically running out of his house, your heart beating a thousand miles a minute from the innocent contact. By the fourth time, you lie together on his bed and talk about your plans for college, your hands sitting centimeters apart on the navy sheets. You havenât dared touch his hand since that day in the nurseâs station.
Youâre window-shopping with Kazuha when you spot the hand cream you had seen yourself gifting Jongseong in your well-given vision. Buying it is one thing, actually giving it to him is another, an awkward, stuttery situation in which the wrapping done by the store employee suddenly seems over-the-top and out-of-place. But Jongseong seems to like itâitâs the last day of his suspension, his black eye is now a yellow-ish color, he can smile without risking splitting his lip in two. He applies it immediately, tells you heâll make sure to wear it every day until the end of winter. You find yourself wishing there was something you could give him for every season so he wouldnât go a day without thinking of you. When you leave, he bashfully thanks you for making sure he doesnât fall behind and says heâs excited to see you at school the next day. You hardly know what to do with yourself, so you squeak out a âme tooâ and slip out the door.
His first day back is a Friday. It starts with Mathematics, a class in which you sit by each other. You remember the first week of classes when Kazuha and Sunoo had ran to sit with each other, expressly because they knew that if he saw you were sitting alone, heâd take the seat next to you, just to better torment you all year. Youâd resented it then; it couldnât make you happier now. Your body is humming with nervous energy, your foot tapping relentlessly against the tiled floor. When he appears in the doorframe, you wave at him as if heâd forgotten his seat in three weeks of absence. His elbow brushes against yours as he sits down.
Between the two of you, friendship blossoms over these months. To the detriment of everyone around you, you continue to bicker as you always have, but itâs now clearly done out of habit, out of affection, even, than out of actual dislike of each other. He and Heeseung slowly integrate your small group of three, and before you know it, it feels as though there have always been five of you. Together, you welcome spring.
In January, to thank you for helping him to pick out his momâs birthday present, Jongseong treats you to some tteokbokki, which you said youâd been craving all week. He orders the spiciest one, then has to take a sip of water between every bite. You laugh at his teary eyes and red face while you devour the bright red rice cakes easily.Â
In February, he makes a show of giving you and Kazuha and Heeseung and Sunoo some homemade chocolates, saying itâs a friend thing. You find out that evening that the others each have five in their boxâthere are twenty in yours. Itâs one of the things that makes you second guess what sort of feelings he has for you. For years, youâve been convinced he harbored strong feelings of disdain for you; now, he seems to enjoy your friendship. Youâre scared to read too much into anything, because if Jongseong is well-liked throughout school, itâs for a reason: heâs nice. To everyone. Even to you, too, nowadays. But if nice is giving five chocolates, what is giving twenty?
A sudden realization hits you in MarchâJongseong appears at your door, drenched from the rain, a bag of your favorite snacks in hand. âYou werenât at school today. I had to find out you were sick from Kazuha,â he says as if she was a random classmate of yours and not your best friend, as if he should be the first to know about these kinds of things. Your mom rushes him in, finds him so charming in the five minutes they converse that she decides he should stay over for dinner, and as you watch him laughing with her, you think, I havenât thought of 28-year-old Jongseong in ages. Iâve only thought of you. And although you can trace the start of your feelings to that dream-like experience you had, you can now say with confidence that itâs not the only reason for them.
College application results come out in April, right on his birthday. The five of you celebrate together at an American-style diner, gorging yourselves on crispy bacon and chocolate chip pancakes. Kazuha is going back to Japan, almost a decade after moving to South KoreaââIâm gonna miss you guys, but I miss takoyaki and my grandma more right now.â Heeseung has been accepted into the Engineering department at the countryâs top university. You, Sunoo and Jongseong are all heading to the same place: you for Screenwriting, which youâve known since you were one of the winners of the scholarship contest last October, Sunoo for Communications, whatever that is, and Jongseong for European History and Literature with a minor in German, that freak. Itâs a good university, and itâs not far from home. The way Jongseong tells you about his acceptance sticks with you: he doesnât say, They accepted me, too, or, Iâm going to the same university as you. He says, Weâll be together.
May is filled with afternoons at the park when you should all be studying for exams. Your mom keeps asking when sheâs going to see âthat wonderful boyâ again. Your friendship with Jongseong has given him new ways of teasing youâafter four years of near-kleptomaniac tendencies, heâs finally stopped stealing your erasers and has instead started to let his gaze linger on your face, to call you pretty when you least expect it, to tuck your hair behind your ear. You hate it most when he asks you whether thereâs something from your romance novels or movies that you want him to recreate. âIs there a field big enough nearby that I can walk through at the break of dawn, Mister Darcy-style?â heâll say, or âIâve always wanted to try that upside-down kiss from Spider-Man. Itâs a classic, really.âÂ
Summer comes early in June. You need to bring a two-liter water bottle and a hand fan to your exams, and youâve never felt such relief as when it was all over. After endless pictures with your parents and siblings, just your parents, just your siblings, then Kazuha and Sunoo, together, then separately, then with Heeseung and Jongseong as well, Kazuha forces you and Jongseong together, watching with a smile as he shyly wraps an arm around your waist and you awkwardly throw up a peace sign. Itâs your first picture of just the two of you.
In July, you and Jongseong unlock a new first: saying goodbye. Heâs leaving to stay with his American family as he does every summer. You show up at his house the day before at four p.m. âto help him pack,â you say, but itâs Jongseong, and he finished packing two days ago. So instead, you sit on his desk chair, he on his bed, and you fight back tears. âYouâre coming back, right?â you ask, like heâs leaving to go to war and not Seattle. Amusement and affection flicker in his eyes. âOf course I am. I wouldnât throw four more years of being a pain in your ass away, would I?â he says, and you smile, because you know itâs going to be much more than four years.
But he doesnât just leave you with a few nice words. Avoiding your gaze, he hands you an envelope. Inside is a single ticket, a two-month membership for your cityâs arthouse cinema that you can only go to when they have student deals or when your parents have had enough of your begging. You canât even begin to imagine how much this mustâve cost. âJongâŚâ you murmur, in awe at the thin slip of paper between your hands. âThis is incredible. Thank you so much.â
Jongseong looks down at his feet, fighting a smile as he kicks the invisible rocks that obviously litter the floor of his bedroom. âI thought youâd get bored without me around, so, that way you can entertain yourself, I guess⌠And if you run into any film bros next year, youâll have seen as many pretentious movies as them.â
You burst into laughter then, and, without thinking, wrap your arms around his neck, thanking him over and over again. It takes him a second, but he wraps his arms around your waist and says itâs no big deal.
As you walk down the path from your house, he calls out your name. âDonât be a stranger,â he says.
You smile. âNever.â
So, heâs not here for summer. Kazuha is working in her parentsâ ramen restaurant to make some money before leaving, even Heeseung leaves two weeks into July for Seoul to visit some relatives there and get accustomed to life in the big city. You only get to laze around with Sunoo, but even he eventually leaves for his grandparentsâ house by the sea, making you promise youâll come visit him at some point, otherwise heâll âdie of boredom.âÂ
Itâs August now, and your brain and body alike buzz with restlessness. You go to the cinema almost every day, making the best of your subscription. If youâre not going around your house looking for spider webs with your vacuum cleaner, youâre riding random bus lines and discovering parts of your town youâve never set foot in before. If youâre not making your way through your never-ending pile of unread books, youâre creating your own stories, finally taking the time to properly outline and draft the one-line ideas youâve had sitting in your Notes app, preparing yourself for the start of your degree. Your mind is taken up with love stories. From Romeo & Juliet to Dirty Dancing to Book Lovers, you canât get enough of the genre. You become particularly obsessed with stories involving time travel, rewatching After Time and Lovely Runner like they contain some precious knowledge. By the end of the month, youâve turned your life into an eight-episode TV seriesâa desperate girl makes a wish on a star only to discover she is fated to marry the one boy she hates most. You know youâd watch that. You send Sunoo and Kazuha the pilot, and after calling you insane numerous times but also heaping on praises, Sunoo says this: lol your going through jay withdrawals.
It shakes you so much youâre not even compelled to message back youâre*.
But heâs not wrong. The more you let yourself admit it, the more you realize how true it is: you miss Jongseong. You text once in a while, youâve even stayed up late talking on the phone a couple of times, but you miss him, his corporeal form, having his gaze on you, having the possibility but never the courage to touch him. Every day, thereâs something you want to tell him about. The cats huddling around a young neighborhood kid as he pours milk into a bowl, the clearance sale at your local library, most books for one buck only, the actor from an 90s Hong Kong film you swear has the exact same smile as him. You donât want to bother him, so you write letters instead. Some you send, some you donâtâthe ones you keep hidden in your drawer usually hint too obviously at your feelings for him. Some of them donât just hint and contain lines of your declarations: I miss you, everything I see reminds me of you, I want to check that your bruises have healed completely even though the last trace of them faded months ago. You keep these letters a secret, even from Sunoo and Kazuha, who would never let you live down such woebegone, down bad behavior.
You do it because it feels good, getting all of your feelings out on paper. Youâre a romantic at heart, so youâre prone to over-exaggeration when it comes to things like theseâbut everything that you write remains based in truth. Youâd started with a postcard of your hometown, jokingly writing, Donât forget where you came from. How is it over there? and heâd actually replied with a postcard of his own, filling it from top to bottom. You easily went from these small postcards to multiple pages of stream-of-consciousness-like writing. You think itâs the most romantic thing youâve ever doneâalthough youâre not sure he feels the same way, considering he still writes to the German pen pal Ms. Schumacher had assigned him in your first year of high school. No one elseâs correspondence had lasted more than four months because sheâd immediately forgotten to make sure you kept in touch regularly.
I ran into Jake Sim at the city library, you write one day. Youâve replied to everything in his latest letter, so youâre now catching him up on your recent adventures. He was checking out some books about Linguistics, of all thingsâhe bought me bubble tea afterwards and told me that the injury he got last April was actually a relief. Did you know his father was a big name in soccer here? Apparently, he never wanted to be a soccer player that badly, and he wants to do Linguistics and Social Anthropology, who wouldâve guessed it. Heâs like Troy Bolton if High School Musical was about Humanities and not singing. Anyways, you probably donât want me to go on and on about him, so I wonât, but we did talk about that fight you guys had back in December. He apologized for it, to you and me both, although he didnât go into much detail â Sunoo is still the only one whoâs had the balls to tell me exactly what happened, and he wasnât even there! â and I was reticent at first, but he seemed genuine. He said he didnât even hang out with Sunghoon or Yunjin or any of those people anymore, that it was only out of convenience really, and that he hopes starting university will be like turning over a new leaf. Well, he could be full of shit, who knows. As I sat there listening to him I wondered what it was I used to see in him. Heâs nice enough, but we only spoke about him for the entire hour. He asked me no questions that werenât âand you?â so it was a bit exhausting.Â
But it got me thinking about your fight again. Reflecting on it now, I can say that it was a turning point for me in my perception of you.
You look at your words, smiling to yourselfâthis is one of the times where you find yourself erring from the topic at hand, instead indulging in sappiness and nostalgia. You write about how your opinion of Jongseong has changed over these months, how it wasnât seeing him as your husband in all those years that had really shaken things up, but rather that day in the nurseâs station, the frightening colors around his eye, his attitude like it was natural that he would get hurt like this for you. You write, Have I been wrong about you this whole time? I thought you harbored the same negative feelings towards me as I had you since the moment youâd laid eyes on me, but all of a sudden, here you were, bloody, bandaged hand holding mine. Even with your busted eye, you looked like an angel next to all that white in the nurseâs station. Iâll never forget your words that day. Would you really not get hurt for anything else, Jong?
âIâm going to the Post Office for a package soon, Y/N. Are you done with your letter?â your mom calls from the staircase landing.
âGive me five minutes!â you call back.
You forage through your drawer for a new sheet of paper and re-write your letter, making sure to leave any compromising parts out and fold both letters into neat squaresâone that will cross the seas and reach Jongseong, one that will live out its days in the darkness of your crowded drawer. Youâve run out of envelopes, so you go look for one in your parentsâ office. Your mom calls out your name again, impatient to leave â if she sends her package off before twelve p.m., it will get to the receiver tomorrow, and sheâs hell-bent on getting perfect five-star Vinted reviews â so you hurriedly put your letter in the envelope, close it, stamp it, and write Jongseongâs name and address on the back. The other letter you absent-mindedly throw in your drawer with the dozens of other letters in which youâd crossed the line.
--
A few weeks later, like an apparition, Jongseong stands before you again.
Heâs tanner from months under the Washington sun, from afternoons spent at his familyâs lake house, on their boat. His hair is slightly shorter and suits him even better; you donât recognize any of the clothes he wears. He grumbles as his mother goes back-and-forth between hugging him, staring at him worriedly and reminding him to call at least twice a week while his father unpacks the trunk. âIâll only be a thirty-minute train ride away, Mom,â he says.Â
Heâs still Jong.
You moved in yesterday, and youâre now waiting for your new roommate, who, after five minutes of deliberating whether she should bring a jacket or not and finally decided against it, changed her mind the minute she stepped outside.Â
Itâs been two months since you last saw him. Shortly after sending your letter, youâd gone to stay with Sunooâs grandparents for a week, just a day before he was set to come back from Seattle. Amid packing and other preparations, you havenât had time to see each other. Is it okay if I respond to your letter in person? I think Iâll be too busy these two coming weeks, he texted you. You replied that it wasnât a problem, you told him which dorm youâd been assigned and found out his was the one next door.
When he notices you staring, he does a double-take. You wave at him, and even from this distance, you see the blush that creeps up his neck and takes over his face as he shyly waves back. Youâve never seen him like thisâheâs always been either arrogant or friendly, never⌠flustered. He makes a motion as if to say, Iâll text you, and heads inside the building with his parents and all of his luggage. Â
Indeed, he texts you some hours later while youâre sharing a piece of strawberry and matcha cake with your roommate Liz, whom you find out is half-GermanâJongseong and your dad would probably love her for that simple fact. Some of the first things sheâd asked you were what your astrological signs were and whether you wanted her to pull tarot cards for you when she was all done setting up her side of the room. Between that and her dyed blonde hair, youâd felt comfortable telling her all about Jongseong, the well and your dream. Unlike your skeptical and sarcastic friends, sheâd nodded along to your every word, a serious expression on her face. âA sign from the universe,â sheâd called it, and she gasped in excitement when his name appeared on your screen.
He sends you a link to a freshersâ week event, some potted plant sale happening on the main campus square, and asks if youâre free to go with him tomorrow. I need something to liven up that depressing room, he writes.
So thatâs how you find yourselves among green plants of all shapes and sizes, searching for one thatâs both low-maintenance and appealing to the eye. Youâre glad that you have something to actually doâif you were just sitting at a cafĂŠ and having a conversation, youâre not sure youâd be able to stand the awkwardness. Youâd chalked up his behavior on the day of his move-in to nerves, or to surprise upon seeing you so unexpectedly. But apparently, it wasnât a one-time thing. He keeps clearing his throat as if he were sick with some cold, wonât look into your eyes for more than split seconds at a time, and in complete opposition to his usual confident, deliberate speech, talks in a quick and disorderly manner. And heâs either really caught a cold, or his ears have just permanently turned red. You ask him if somethingâs wrong a couple times, but he violently shakes his head, says, âNo, what could be wrong?â then looks at you as if you might tell him whatâs wrong.
When youâre alone again, you wonder what on earth could have happened over the summer that could make him change his behavior with you so radically. Did something happen in Seattle? Maybe he met someone there and doesnât know how to tell you. Maybe you went overboard with your letters, he doesnât want to be friends anymore, he wants to let you down easy but doesnât know how to tell you. Or maybeâmaybe you got impossibly pretty during those two months, and absence does make the heart grow fonder, as they say, and every thought you have about him, he has about you, but he doesnât know how to tell you.
In any case, heâs hiding something.
The theory that he might want to stop being friends soon falls flatâthe invitations to other freshersâ events keep coming, be it free wine & pizza taster sessions from the Wine Society, karaoke nights with the Taylor Swift Society or a shark movie marathon with the Bad Film Society, and he never turns you down when you tell him thereâs something you want to visit in this new city of yours, even when the thing you want to visit in question is a bakery you have to queue in front of at seven a.m. if you want to get a pain au chocolat. In your defense, they turn out to be the best ones you and Jongseong have ever triedâalthough, to be fair, neither of you has been to France.
Things progressively return to normal. Heâs able to make eye contact for more than three seconds again, he listens carefully and laughs along when you tell him about your week by the sea with Sunoo, he fills you in on what Heeseungâs been up to. One thing remains different, howeverâwhen you throw quips at him, he usually wouldâve delighted in coming up with a better, wittier response, but now, heâll roll his eyes at best, look at you amusedly and stay silent at worst. âWonât you even entertain me?â you ask him once, to which he replies that youâre doing a good job entertaining yourself as is.Â
Instead, he becomes more earnest. As per usual you badger him with questions like Arenât I so pretty right now? or Isnât my outfit so cute today? to get a reaction out of him, and if during your high school days heâd either fake a puking sound or look you up and down and grumble I guess, he now smiles and simply says Yes, you are, Yes, it is. It seems impossible to keep track of his attitude: one day, heâs one thing, the next, heâs another person entirely.Â
It annoys you. You take his changing demeanor to mean that now that heâs a college student, he wonât indulge in your childish squabbles anymore, as though he was above all of that now, when just three months ago he was stalking your parentsâ Facebooks to find unfavorable photos of you from when you were thirteen and using them as reaction pictures in your friendsâ group chat. You think of your graduation day, of the box heâd given you, all done up in wrapper paper and a bowâhe had filled it with every eraser heâd stolen from you over the years, heâd even gone so far as to date every single one of them, from the second of October freshman year to the twenty-eighth of November of your senior year. You didnât count them, but there had to be at least a hundred. At the time, youâd just thought it was funnyâbut what if the gesture had meant something deeper than youâd realized? What if he was marking the end of something with that box? No more playing around, weâre adults now. But classes have barely started, you donât know your way to the off-campus library, you arenât a different person to who you were just weeks or even months earlier. Why is he acting like he is? You look at him, and you see the boy whose fault it was you had to buy a new eraser every weekâwho knows how many books you couldâve bought with that money. But when he turns to look at you, too, and your eyes meet, youâre suddenly assailed with the memories of that night, the kind eyes, the soft smile.Â
Does his future capacity to love me already exist in his heart?
Your heartbeat speeds up and you have to look away.
--
From your letters, it seems to be much hotter back home than in Seattleâyou talk of sunburns, of afternoons spent inside with the fan on maximum speed, of ice melting instantly and watering down your Coke Zeros, whereas Jay can walk around the city pleasantly and needs to bring a jacket if heâll be out until late after sundown. And yet, as he reads your latest letter, his skin prickles feverishly, from the top of his head to the tip of his toes. Heâd excitedly torn the envelope open the second it arrived in the mail, heart thumping as he counted the pages, at least three more than usual â he was always happy that you wanted to talk to him at all, so the fact that you had this much to tell him sent him over the moon â but he would have never expected what was awaiting him inside.
With a smile on his face, he read your replies to the questions heâd asked you last time, your reactions to everything he told you about, the live Mariners game, the lake house, the rides on the boat. He imagined you as you sat at your desk in your room heâd only seen once, when youâd held a small party for your birthday and he, having arrived first, was honored with a tour of your house. He imagined your smile, the way you played with your hair when you focused on something, wondered whether you pondered every word before you wrote it down as he did or whether you poured your thoughts out onto the page without hesitation. His smile faltered when Jake Simâs name appeared in your neat handwriting, but he was relieved to find out your description of him now was miles away from the one at the start of the school year.Â
Then you start writing about him. Him, Park Jongseong, and your words startle him so much, itâs like heâd forgotten he was the recipient of this letter in the first place.
But it got me thinking about your fight again. Reflecting on it now, I can say that it was a turning point for me in my perception of you.Â
Heâs been lying comfortably in his bed, but he sits up the moment his eyes take in these words. If there is one topic the two of you have practically never broached, itâs this exactly: your relationship, the changes itâs gone through this past year. Except for a few mentions made in jest here and there, youâve always conveniently ignored the fact that not so long ago, you were at each otherâs throats. At least, you were at his throat, and Jay let you be, let you think the hatred went both ways, when in reality all he wanted was to keep you close one way or another. To him, anything was better than indifference.
But here you are, writing about how you feel about him, not in hints, not in jokes, but actually telling him black and white what goes through your head when you think of himâin other words, everything heâs been dying to know ever since he met you and especially ever since you started warming up to him a few months ago.
I have never told you about that night because I know itâll just be more fodder for you to endlessly tease me, and I havenât even mentioned it in these letters that I write and donât send. Sometimes I debate the ethics of itâif I know something about our futures, isnât it right that you know, too? But then again, I still hesitate whether what happened was real or not. As with anything, the more time passes, the more I forget about it. What kind of cheese youâd put on the pasta, the movie that played in the background, whether the stairs were carpeted or woodedâthese details have evaded me by now. All I clearly remember is your face and how I felt, seeing it then, seeing it the next day at school, ten years younger, the same exact person in what felt like a different universe. As much as I tried to deny it, I know now that it was no coincidenceâI was talking about it with Sunoo and he said that sometimes, we want something so badly, we conjure it up for ourselves. Heâs not always a dimwit. And heâs right, the kind of love I felt from you in that dream â or not-dream â Iâve yearned for it ever since I first watched Pride & Prejudice, the 2005 film to be precise, when I was ten. But with you? That was what I couldnât believe at first. I donât think I need to explain whyâyou were there, I think you knew how I felt about you for over three years, itâs not like I tried to hide it.
Then you turned up and the sight of you was enough to bring back all the feelings from that dream. You mustâve wondered why my behavior with you switched so suddenlyâwell, a glimpse into marital bliss is sometimes enough for a girl to make some changes in her life. Yet I valiantly tried to convince myself that any flutter of my heart around you was due to this stupid dream, to a version of you my brain had conjured up because it was starved for affection, and you happened to be at the forefront of my mind, even if not for the right reasons. But it was no use. I had entertained the possibility that this future was really mine, and I couldnât go back to seeing you as the boy who annoyed the living daylights out of me.
But Jong, if you werenât you, I wouldâve been confused for a week and then I wouldâve gotten over it. I stayed confused for a while, and everything you did only served to confuse me further. I started to notice you more, to see you for who you were and not for the idea I had constructed of you in my head, I stopped taking note of only the things that reinforced this idea. And that changed everything.
Letâs get it out of the way: as much as I hate to admit it because it proves you right, I saw that you are indeed devastatingly handsome. It devastates me every time I have to look at that stupid, wonderful face of yours. And if aging is something youâre worried about, donât be. Iâve seen you at 28, and letâs just say that your jaw somehow only gets more chiseled. Iâve realized that you donât just participate in class to be a prick â except for when you contradict me in Literature, I know you only do that to piss me off, and yes, it works â but that you actually care about what we learn and that you donât want the teacher to feel like theyâre talking to a classroom full of students made out of bricks. Iâve also realized that you didnât specifically pick German to be the one subject where you must beat me at all costs, you just actually really like German, even if Iâm still undetermined as to why. And I can finally admit to myselfâyou are funny. Sometimes. There were so many times I had to stop myself from laughing at one of your idiotic puns because I could not bear to give you the satisfaction. That feeling when the worst person you know makes a funny joke, and all that. And as much as Iâve mocked you for it, I do actually like your laugh. I like that youâre only loud when you laugh, or sneeze, or get excited over something. You donât scream, you donât get angry, and I think thatâs a lot for a boy fresh out of puberty. Or for any boy, really.Â
But above all, youâre kind, Jong. I think itâs the best thing about you. I think itâs the best thing anyone can be. I see it in your patience with Heeseung when he starts one of his rants better reserved for Reddit than real life, I see it in the way you took Sunoo and Kazuha in stride, even though theyâre a bit rough around the edges sometimes, I see it in the way you guide the freshmen at the start of every year, when all anyone does is complain about them, I see it in the gentleness with which you let down the girls who confess to you, even the more persistent ones. I used to think they were crazy, but I understand them more than ever now. I also used to think that all those kindnesses meant that the ones you occasionally showed me meant nothing more than thatâoccasional kindnesses. You were just a nice guy, occasionally so to me. But you sort of ratted yourself out when you gave me those twenty chocolates for Valentineâs.
Or, really, what made things clearer was that fight in December. I guess I was wrongâyou do get angry. I remember a thought I had at the time: just when I think I know you, you do something to shake it all up. You punched two of the star soccer players of our school in the face because they said some mean, unimportant things about me. Thinking about it now, I still donât understand it. Was it another one of your acts of kindness?Â
And then I thought of those other times you helped me out. Do you remember themâthe art project, the handwritten notes after my grandma passed away, you tearing Park Sunghoon a new one in the girlsâ bathroom. Iâm sure there are many more that Iâve dismissed simply because I did not want to see you in any other light than the one Iâd decided to shine on you.Â
Maybe Iâm rewriting the past here, but Iâve been thinking about something lately. The theme today seems to be honesty, so Iâll lay myself bare and tell you something I havenât told anyone yet, not even myself. The more I write, the more I become aware of its truth. I like you, Jong. I think I have for a long time, longer than either of us thinks. Maybe thatâs why I kept buying erasers.
I donât have the best memory â I suspect iron deficiency, it runs in my momâs side of the family â but I do remember this. The first time I saw you. I havenât noticed your face changing in real time, but Iâm sure Iâd laugh at how much of a baby you looked back then. Although I didnât fare much better, Iâm sure. Well, youâre the one that has all these embarrassing pictures of me, you freak, so Iâm sure you could tell me. Moving onâŚÂ
I found you really cute. You were chatting to the person next to you, maybe it was Heeseung, I didnât look properlyâI only looked at you. Donât laugh at me. It was the first day of high school, there was a nervous energy in the air, but you seemed happy to be there. You know I donât have hordes of friends like you do, I donât walk through life with people naturally gravitating towards me. Iâm okay with it now, but it was something I struggled with back then. Kazuha, Sunoo and I have had each other since our elementary days, and I never needed more than thatâbut fifteen is the prime age for comparison, and as the weeks passed and we got used to being high schoolers, I listened to everyone sing your praises, I watched as you talked with all of our classmates, even our teachers, like you were old friends. But we sat next to each other in a couple of classes, and you wouldn't talk to me outside of partnered work. I, who wanted to be easily charmed by you like everyone else was, who thought maybe youâd help me come out of my shell. But it felt like sitting next to me was torture to you, like the boy whom I watched speak with ease to everyone else disappeared when I was around. And so â and Iâm not proud of this â every smart remark in class, every joke that had the entire class roaring, every high five you gave out in the hallway, I started to despise them. And by association, I started to despise you. After that, it was easy to find fault in everything you did, my contempt was only enhanced by everyoneâs admiration. But Iâm not alone here. It went both ways, didnât it? I donât think you liked that I didnât like you and openly showed it, so used to being everyoneâs favorite person you were. I remember how you showily tried to be nice to me after that, maybe you just wanted another friend, but I didnât let you. I donât blame us for how we acted, only for taking so long to get our heads out of our asses.
(I have to say, I also have a thing for hating people. Remind me to tell you about Na Jaemin and Shin Ryujin one of these days.)
Anyways, I think itâs because I had liked you so much at first that I could then seemingly hate you so much. But I never hated you, Jong, not really. Iâm sorry if I gave you that impression. Can I take it all back now?Â
Now that weâre entering university soon, I canât help but look back on high school. This is what I want to know, but Iâm not sure Iâll ever have the courage to ask you, because if your answer is the one I suspect, I donât know how Iâll handle all the regret in my heart.
Have I been wrong about you this whole time? I thought you harbored the same negative feelings towards me as I had you since the moment youâd laid eyes on me, but all of a sudden, here you were, bloody, bandaged hand holding mine. Even with your busted eye, you looked like an angel next to all that white in the nurseâs station. Iâll never forget your words that day. Would you really not get hurt for anything else, Jong?
Your letter abruptly ends here, no concluding remarks, no wishing him a fun time in Seattle and looking forward to his next letter, no sign-off. It was as if someone cut you off before you could say everything you wanted, but then why send him this seemingly unfinished letter? It is all the more bizarre since your letters are usually meticulous: you write on every other line, it looks like you take your time with every single letter, the only disturbance in your otherwise perfect handwriting is your going back-and-forth between cursive and script sâs. But this particular letter looks rushed, your lines are sloppy, some words need to be read a few times over to be understood. What kind of state had you been in, writing these words? Jayâs heart swells, thinking that you were as moved writing as he was reading. He even looks through your letter again, wishing to find a tear stain somewhere, but there are none. Maybe heâs been watching too many of these romantic period dramas you always go on about.
He has to pace his room when heâs done reading your letter, but he feels trapped inside these four walls, so he dashes outside, saying that heâs getting some air when his relatives ask him where heâs off to in such a rush, and walks around the block five times. When heâs back in his room, he rereads your letter, eyes taking in each and every word slowly and carefully, making sure he doesnât misread anything.
You like him. You, Y/N, like him, Jongseong, itâs a fact, itâs real, you said so yourself, you went into quite some detail about it, he canât believe it, but itâs real, itâs written right there on the page, if anyone dares tell him heâs fooling himself, he can prove them wrong, youâre the one who said it.
The smile doesnât leave his lips for the rest of the day, he can barely eat, heâs already full of happiness. He reads your words over and over before falling asleep, committing them to memory, dreaming about them, about you.
You. How should he respond to this? Are you even expecting a response? You seem to know heâs not impartial to you, either, although thatâs an understatement.Â
In the following days, the thought that you hadnât meant to send him this letter nags at him. The abrupt ending, the absence of your usual Love, Y/N. The fact that this had come out of left fieldânone of your previous letters had even a romantic undertone, no matter how he tried in his own to hint at his missing you, the most reference to seeing each other again you would give him was Itâll be better to show you this in real life. The act of sending letters itself didnât feel very platonic, but you never went there, so he didnât, either. He had secretly yearned to have you this close all these years, he would never forgive himself if he ended up chasing you away now with his over-eagerness.
You had landed on something very real in your letter: I donât think you liked that I didnât like you and openly showed it, so used to being everyoneâs favorite person you were. I remember how you showily tried to be nice to me after that, maybe you just wanted another friend, but I didnât let you. He cursed his fifteen-year-old self, that idiot who couldnât even speak to a girl no matter how much he wanted to, just because she was so pretty, he was afraid of saying something stupid and messing it up before it even had a chance to start.
On days when youâd had particularly nasty or petty arguments â it could get pretty bad, at the start, before you both started maturing and realized how ridiculous you were, especially with your classmates telling you to keep it classy â heâd stay up all night, wondering why you hated him so much in the first place, what on Earth he couldâve done to warrant such vitriol. Now, finally, he knew, and he could only resent the fact that no one had invented time machines yet, so he could nip his useless ego in the bud; so he could tell younger Jay not to take it personally, that you had your reasons for disliking him, that even if you hadnât, the world wonât end if someone doesnât like him like everyone usually does.Â
Because, he hates to admit, that was what had done it for Jay. He couldnât stand that someone â not just someone, but one of the prettiest girls heâd ever seen, a girl heâd been hyping himself up to talk to every day, but never found the courage to â didnât immediately fall for his charms. And not just that, but even showed just how much she disliked him. You looked him up-and-down with disdain, made disgusted faces at his jokes, rolled your eyes when he spoke up in class. It made him burn with anger, but he also weirdly enjoyed itâat least, you were paying attention to him. So, he amped it up. Talked louder, laughed louder, hovered around you. He even stole your erasers, wrote the date on which heâd taken them, kept them in a box on his desk that he looked at every time he studied at home. He aimed to beat you in every class you shared, even though neither of you cared that much about gradesâthe annoyed look on your face when he boasted about the two points heâd gotten over you was enough satisfaction.
All in all, he behaved like a child, and you reciprocated in like.
Until you didnât.
It was a random Tuesday when something in your attitude towards him shifted. It wasnât a complete 180, but he noticed everything about you, so even a slight change of your tone was obvious to him. You started using your nickname for him more often than his full nameâhe never told you, but of course he loved that you didnât call him Jay like everyone else, that you had your own way of addressing him. It was a sign to him that the two of you had something special, even if it was on the opposite end of the spectrum of what he wanted with you.
He again spent sleepless nights wondering what had caused this change: was it something he had done, or something within you? It was a welcome change, that much was sure, but he was initially too confused to take it in stride. Heâd long made peace with the fact that heâd never have you the way he really wanted, so he was fine with whatever this wasâbut now, you were changing, your interactions were tinged with something like shyness, the distance between you felt greater than ever. He tried to keep up his smart-ass appearances around you, but you only indulged in your old habits once in a while, as though you had grown tired of arguing with him, even of giving him the time of day.
So he resolved himself to adapting his behavior to yours. If you stared at him intently like his face was a puzzle you were trying to solve, he let you, rested his head on his palm and smiled as he stared back at you. Finally, he had an excuse to look at you without you threatening to punch him or saying a picture would last longer. He knew they did, heâd had to resort to scrolling through Sunooâs and Kazuhaâs Instagrams to find any photos of you. Yours was private and at the time, you wouldâve probably cursed him out if heâd sent a follow request. If you seemed too annoyed or upset over something, heâd leave you alone, heâd do something nice to let you know you didnât need to have your guards up at all times around him. If you seemed to silently call for a truce of hostilities, he easily complied.
Then, after a few weeks, your petty arguments resumed, but those too were differentâif before they felt filled with real disdain and irritation, they now seemed to be a comfortable habit to fall back on, almost like a fun hobby. Those, too, Jay readily welcomed.
And so things changed in a direction Jay had never thought would one day be possible. You gave him no explanations, nor did he ask for any, and soon he stopped losing sleep over the whyâs and the howâs and simply let himself enjoy the fact that you now had the semblance of a friendship, that he could compliment you and pass it off as amical teasing, that he could learn things about you like what you spent your weekends doing, what your relationship with your family was like, whether you were a dog or cat person, whether you wanted to visit his farm in Stardew Valley.Â
Unsurprisingly, this only enhanced his already pathetically strong feelings for you. He worried over how to make sure this wasnât some sort of 30-day friendship trial you had wanted to test out. He reveled in the fact that his top university of choice was the one you had already been accepted to. He now knew what it felt like to have you smile at him, smile because of him, and he never wanted again to live in a world where this was not a daily occurrence.Â
He now sort of has an answerâyour letter doesnât make it very clear, it makes him think again that you really had not meant to send it, but you seem to have had a dream. A dream of him, 28-year-old him, to be precise, of your life togetherâheâs not sure. At this point in time, he doesnât care much, either. Whether it was a dream or a real vision of the future that you had, all that matters is that it allowed you to see him in a new light, a light which he had hoped for years would one day appear to you, and it had changed things. And now, you liked him.
You said so yourself.
Heâs at a loss for words. He canât concentrate for long enough to put all his thoughts in order, he canât make himself calm down and write his feelings down. He has to pack to go home, once heâs home, heâll have to pack for university. But itâs only two weeks from now to the day you meet again, and itâll be better to say what he wants to say in person, anyway.
Is it okay if I respond to your letter in person? I think Iâll be too busy these two coming weeks, he texts you.
And then those two weeks pass like two seconds and youâre there, a few meters away from him. All the speeches heâd prepared in his head, from grand declarations of love to laid-back admittances of Yeah, I like you too, youâre cool, I guess, they all vanish from his head. For fourteen days heâs been going through scenarios upon scenarios of your reunion, what youâd look like, what heâd say, how youâd react. But now that he can actually see you, now that he would just have to walk a few steps if he wanted to touch you, hug you, kiss you â hoping that was something you wanted to do â he freezes. He forgets how his body works, the part in his brain thatâs meant to manage language ability fails him. HIs mom calls him over, urging him into his new dorm building, and all he can do is wave back at you like an idiot.
When finally he musters the courage to text you, what he hopes will be the day that starts your romantic relationship turns into the day Park Jongseong realizes how much of a loser he is. For the first hour, he canât look at you, he canât get through a sentence without stuttering out half of his words, he runs out of things to say in record time. All he can think of is how easy itâd be to grab one of your hands, hold it in his and walk around this stupid potted plant sale as if the two of you were two halves of a whole. He doesnât even want a potted plant, his roommate already has five, he just wanted an excuse to see you. He steals glances at you when youâre looking elsewhere, and he notices everything about you tenfold now that he can, now that caring about you doesnât need to be in vain any longer. He tells himself that he just needs to calm down a bit, even when you have the confirmation that the person youâre about to confess to already likes you, revealing your feelings to someone is always nerve-wracking, the two of you havenât seen in each other in a while, heâll talk to you once his heart gets out of his throat.
But youâre acting normal. Suspiciously so. Youâre acting like you never told him you liked him, like nothing has changed between you. He rereads your letter the second he gets back to his dorm. Heâs not crazy, itâs written right there, I like you, Jong. I think I have for a long time, longer than either of us thinks. He knows the words by heart now, but he checks them anyway. So why are you acting like you never said anything? Had you really not meant to send that letter? Did Jay actually intrude on your private thoughts by reading words that had never meant to be seen by another soul?
You continue to behave as you usually would around him, but if he couldnât go back to vicious bickering when things changed the first time, he canât go back to friendly bickering now that things â for him â have changed a second time. He doesnât even want friendly to be in your shared vocabulary anymore.Â
So he stops giving in. If you make fun of him, he just stands there with an unimpressed if amused look on his face. If you pedantically correct him on something, he just nods his head and accepts it. He can tell youâre bothered by it, but he needs to show you that he doesnât want to go on being just friends with youâhe wants to compliment you without having to pass it off as teasing, he wants to stare at you with hearts in his eyes without having to look away when you catch him, he wants to spend every waking second of every day with you, he wants to hold your hand, hold you.Â
He could wait for things to change slowly again, but why wait when he could help things along?
--
Itâs nine p.m. on a Saturday and youâre sneaking Jongseong into your dorm. Liz is away for the weekend, gone back home to celebrate her auntâs birthday, so you have the room to yourselves. It took some convincing to get him to come â What if we get caught coming in, What if your T.A. sees us, What if I get reported to campus police â and so when your verbal reassurances failed to work, you resorted to blinking up at him through your lashes and that did the trick.
Jongseong was in many ways unlike any other man youâd ever met; in some other ways, he was the exact same.
Plastic bag of the tteokbokki youâd asked for in hand, he looks around the deserted hallways like someone might jump out of nowhere and beat him to a pulp at any given moment. At this time of the week, everyoneâs out partying or holed up in their dorms, presumably either to rest or because of a lack of friends so early on in the semester. You grab his free hand and hurry him along to the elevatorâonce inside, it takes you a few seconds before you realize youâre still holding it, and you retract your hand quickly while he just smiles.Â
You settle yourselves on the floorâcomfort is not worth getting gochujang sauce on your white sheets. You sit criss-cross in front of each other, the food between the two of you, and catch up on your first week of class in-between bites of spicy, gooey rice cakes and fish cakes. You wonder, if one day you and Jongseong are no longer friends, how long you will keep associating tteokbokki with him.
When you tell him that you and Jake share a class, Introduction to Film Studies, he gives you a look. âWhatâs that face for?â you ask.
âDid you guys sit next to each other?â
You chuckle. âOf course. We only knew each other in that room, it wouldâve been weird not to.â
He continues to stare at you. After a while, he muses, âYouâre notâŚ?â
You halt in your tracks, rice cake at the end of your plastic fork hanging in the air, halfway between the container and your mouth. âWhatever youâre thinking, the answer is no.â Still in love with him, interested in him again, you donât know the exact details of Jongseongâs thought process, all you know is he has nothing to worry aboutâif itâs something he worries about.
When a smile slowly grows on his lips and he nods, saying, âOkay, good,â you let yourself think it might be.
Later, youâre ten minutes into a senseless blockbuster movie when he suddenly pauses it. It snaps you out of a tranceâhis hand was awfully close to yours, so is his shoulder, his thigh, his knee, everything, really, and you havenât been able to concentrate on anything but the warmth radiating off his skin and the intensity with which you crave to feel it intentionally rather than accidentally. When he speaks, thereâs something serious in his tone that makes you nervous. âY/N,â he says as he turns to you, and now his face is awfully close, too. Thereâs still many centimeters separating you, but in this tiny, barely lit-up room, he feels closer than ever before. âDo you remember when I said Iâd reply to your letter in real life?â
You tilt your head. âYeah, that was ages ago.â
âWell, I thought Iâd do it now.â
âNow?â
He takes a deep, shaky breath. âNow.â
And then those safe centimeters suddenly disappear, and Jongseongâs lips are on yours. Itâs a brief, chaste kiss, so quick you wonder if it even happened when he leans back again.
âI like you, too,â he says, and your heart stops.
âW-what?â is all you can say back, eyes wide like heâs just admitted to killing someone rather than reciprocating your feelings.
His confident facade quickly crumbles. âGod, this was so much cooler in my head, I-Iâm sorry.â He pulls something out of his sweatpants pocket, pages folded over and over into a tiny square. As he unfolds them, you recognize your paper, your handwritingâbut what do your letters have anything to do with him kissing you, of all things? âI donât think you meant to send this. But Iâm glad you did.â
He hands you the pages and your eyes skim over the words, not detecting anything out of the ordinary, untilâBut it got me thinking about your fight again. Reflecting on it now, I can say that it was a turning point for me in my perception of you. You remember this line, because you had made sure to strike it and everything that came afterward out when you rewrote the letter that you would actually send Jongseong. So how was he giving you this?Â
âI-How do you have this?â you ask, voice trembling. You feel as though your heart overflows with all kinds of emotions, and so your eyes follow, tears staining your lower lashes.Â
But Jongseong is not one to let you hide things from him. âHey, no, itâs okay,â he says, warm hands coming to cup your face. âLook at me.â You have no choice but to obligeâhis gaze is somehow both soft and stern, a mix of concern and determination. âDid you mean what you wrote in here?â You nod. âThen everythingâs okay. You donât know how happy I was reading this.â
The tension in your body slowly starts to fade. âReally?â
âReally. I cherish every single word in there.â
âReally?â you repeat, and he chuckles.
âReally.â
Your heartbeat speeds up as you gaze into his eyes, as you let yourself bask in the affection and endearment you find there. You canât quite comprehend whatâs happening. The letter, the kiss, his confession, your inadvertent confession, itâs all a mess in your head; so sudden, but such a long time coming at the same time. You never imagined that things would change so quicklyâless than a year ago, you thought Jongseong was the most irritating person on this planet. After meeting his 28-year-old self, you thought itâd take ages for the two of you to be on such good terms. But now, just a week into your first semester of university, belly full of tteokbokki and Sprite, you like each other enough not only to be in the same room without hurling insults at each other but to actually be smiling at each other, willingly at that.
Your eyes drift down to his lips, just like in the hallway all those months ago, and the words slip out before you can stop them. Theyâre a mere whisperââKiss me again.â
Jongseong doesnât need to be told twice. Still cupping your face, he bridges the gap between the two of you again, and this time, when your lips meet, they donât come apart so quickly. Itâs your first kiss, and itâs nothing short of magical, better than any romance novel couldâve prepared you for. His lips are warm and soft against yours, moving slowly, gingerly; as if heâs scared to take any wrong step, he lets you control the pace, follows every tilt of your head this way and that. Itâs a relief that he seems to know as little about this as you doâhis hands havenât moved from your face, yours are on his knees, all you can do is focus on the movement of your lips, to think of anything else at the same time would be overwhelming.Â
âIâve liked you from the start,â he suddenly says, face still so close you can feel his breath on your lips as he speaks.Â
âHm?â you hum, body reeling from the kiss.
âIâve liked you from the start,â he repeats, grinningâhe looks relieved, like heâs been waiting to say these words for a long time. âI canât believe this is happening after all these years. Or at all, really.â
âI think I did, too.â
âYeah, you mentioned that in your letter.â
Your eyes widen and you bury your face in your hands as Jongseong laughs. âYouâre never going to let me live that down, are you?â you mumble.
He smooths over your hair with one hand, brings your face back up with the other. âDonât worry. I wonât ever make you regret this.â
Your brain and heart are too all over the place for you to come up with a coherent answer, so you lean in and reconnect your lips to his. Itâs already becoming your favorite sensation, feeling him smile into the kiss, threading your fingers in his soft hair.
Time passes delicately like this, the two of you on your single bed, in the sheets that you bought three weeks ago. A lot of it is spent kissing and learning how to fall into each otherâs rhythm, but you also spend hours talking, comparing situations and how youâd experienced them. You thought his occasional acts of kindness were done out of guilt, evidence that he did have some morals; he was trying to show he cared about you. He thought youâd despised him from the moment you saw him; you reiterate in more detail than your letter what really happened, you say you wish you knew then what you know now.Â
âBut I never hated you, Jong. I think I wanted to believe that I did, but I never actually did.â
âYou glared at me everytime I walked past like I killed a member of your family.â
You groan, ashamed of yourself. âI did, didnât I?â
âYou did,â he says, chuckling, placing a kiss on your forehead. His arms are around you, your head rests atop his heartâyouâve never felt more comfortable in your life. âBut itâs okay. Weâre here now, and I donât want us to have any regrets about high school. We had a good time, didnât we?â
You tilt your head up to look at him. âIâm sure you did, stealing all my erasers.â
He lets out a hearty laugh. Clearly, heâs very proud of his feat. âHey, I gave all of them back.â
âAnd what am I going to do with a hundred erasers, Jong?â you ask, laughing too, pecking his cheek aggressivelyâyour way of punishing him for a grave deed.
âKeep them as a token of my love for you,â he says, and your breath falters at the mention of that word. âIn fifty years, itâll be a sign that Iâve liked you since the beginning, I just had a funny way of showing it.â
âFifty years, huh?â
He grins. âFifty, a hundred, whatever. Youâre not getting rid of me.â
âI wasnât planning to.â
Youâre both smiling so wide, you can barely manage a kiss. He trails kisses from your lips to your ear. Holding you close, he whispers, âItâs always been you, Y/N. Always and only you.â
There may be thorns on the otherwise immaculate rose that is your life, but Park Jongseong was never one of themâall along, he was a bud waiting to bloom.
--
The more time passes, the more you wonder whether that night you had seen in your vision will ever come. Thereâs been evenings similar to itâcrashing the minute you came home from a long day on set, telling yourself youâd take a fifteen-minute power nap only to wake up three hours later and coming downstairs to find your husband cooking dinner, cleaning the kitchen, taking care of your son or simply watching TV, but waiting for you, always waiting for you. He seems as happy now watching you come down the stairs as he was then finding your face among all the students flocking out of lecture halls.Â
The details are blurry now, but many small things seem to be different from what youâd seen. He still tries to recreate your favorite meal, but itâs not pasta all'arrabbiata, itâs laksa, because your first date as an official couple was to a Malaysian restaurant, not an Italian one. Heâs still the best father you know, but you have one son, not twin girlsâalthough that offer to âgive him a younger sibling to play withâ is always on the table. Even the house you live in is different from the one in your dream, which has now become nothing more than a funny anecdote you share with people when they ask you the story of how you and Jongseong met.
You think of Sunooâs words from all those years ago: Sometimes, we want something so badly, we conjure it up for ourselves. Had 18-year-old you been in such denial over her feelings for Jongseong that sheâd had to convince herself a magical well had bestowed a crazy dream upon her to admit that, yes, there was something there, something other than childish hatred?
It doesnât matter anymore. Months pass without you thinking about that well, anyway.Â
Tonight, you come home late from work after having had to do last-minute changes to the script for your current project, a movie that starts shooting in a few days. Jongseong texted you that he was going to bed an hour or so again, so youâre greeted by a plate of japchae covered in film paper. The post-it note stuck to it reads, Iâm afraid of the repercussions of too much curry consumption on our son, so no laksa tonight my love. Hope you like it. Come to bed quick. You were starving a second ago, but you decide food can waitâother things canât.
You tiptoe up the stairs and into your sonâs room, breathing in the scent of his hair and placing a kiss there. His hair is still worryingly sparse, but if heâs anything like his dad, itâll come in a bit later than the other kids. You always thought babies with a full head of hair were freaky, anyway. He doesnât budge a bit, sleeping like a logâhis dad is another story, shuffling in bed the moment you step into your shared bedroom. He opens his arms wide, a silent invitation.
âYouâre home,â he says as you attach yourself to his body, your leg hiked up over his, your face buried in the crook of his neck, your thumb caressing the start of stubble on his cheeks.
You smile. âI am.â
Š asahicore on Tumblr, 2024. please do not repost, translate, or plagiarize my works. support your creators by reblogging and leaving feedback!
permanent taglist: @zreamy @sunghoonmybeloved @lalalalawon @sd211 @w3bqrl @raikea10 @wntrnghts @moonlighthoon @4imhry @rikisly @loves0ft @iamliacamila @theboingsuckerasseater9000 @chaechae-23 @baekhyuns-lipchain @hyuckslvr @vernonburger @amorbonbon @fluerz @jakeflvrz @enhastolemyheart (ask to be removed/added!)
#enhypen x reader#jay x reader#jongseong x reader#enhypen fluff#jay fluff#enhypen fanfiction#jay fanfiction#enhypen au#enhypen imagines#enhypen scenarios
3K notes
¡
View notes
Text
future problems â coriolanus snow x fem!wife!reader
hi everyone :) jumping on the bandwagon
this man is so fine i couldnât help myself. i hope everyone had an amazing holiday if they celebrate â i celebrate christmas, so here is my almost 10k word christmas gift to all of you xoxo love u all v much thank you for reading !!
as always, warnings: corio-lame-o is a fucking warning holy fuck, smuuuuut, arranged marriage (i think this counts?), coriolanus is a distrustful evil fuck (but heâs super hot), fem!reader, reader is married to this dickhead (i say as if i wouldnât want to be lmao), angst, sexism and misogyny is def in here, p in v penetration, m receiving oral, choking, dom!corio, asshole!corio, sub!reader, subspace kinda
informal warnings: bro what the fuck was i on this is literally 10.2k words and i refuse to edit because im super lazy anyway we die like men you've been warned
anyways⌠here is future problems:
he never wanted to get married.
he saw it as a potential problem, one that would most definitely lead to loose ends â and he hated loose ends.
despised them.
however, his innate need to maintain an image was far more important to him. he weighed the costs and benefits in his head like an algorithm â check, check, check. coriolanusâ mind left no stone unturned, especially when future problems were to be squashed before they could ever be wiped from memory. in the end⌠he decided he would marry.
and it would be you.
he never allowed himself to be naive â so he would never allow himself to marry someone he already loved. lucy gray? a childâs want for something they canât have, and something they wouldnât realize until later that it was a walking regret. no â he could never marry someone that would harm him. absolutely not. out of the question. therefore, it had to be you.
it had to be you because what harm would you cause him? you were shy, quiet, of satisfactory social standing, and uncontroversial. everything a patriarch of the snow family would want. deserved. be entitled to.
he needed someone that wouldnât be a problem â a loose end in the future. he had conquered so much â he refused to let anything else, especially as irrelevant as a significant other, stand in his way.
however⌠it did not aid him in his stone-cold lack of a love affair conquest that you were absolutely breathtaking.
at first, it was just an ego boost. he simply couldnât stop his thoughts from voicing, of course sheâs perfect. the snow legacy can only have perfect.
but then⌠oh, thenâŚ
then he saw your smile.
oh, your smile.
your fucking smile.
the first time he caught himself enjoying it â he scolded himself. he refused to see you for a week. a punishment of sorts. more so for him than for you. after, he refused to let his eyes wander on the pretty features of your face for him to witness a reaction to something someone had said or done. he didnât want to be reminded of what it was like to experience joy or peace because someone else was experiencing it â that was what almost costed him everything he had built.
no one would ever tear that down. not again, not ever.
no one.
when the day of your marriage came, it was business as usual. he refused to meet eye contact, and did not partake in more conversations with you than he had to. he could tell you felt uncomfortable â but he forced himself not to care. he drove it down, down, down like a miner drilling for more coal â hoping, one day, it would be worth it.
and it was⌠until he was sick.
it was a minor ailment â nothing major, but he was on bedrest for about a week or two. he had employed enough adequate members to his staff to feel that things would at least be taken care of until then. he also found comfort in the fact that two weeks was not long enough for something irreversible to occur. if a problem had taken placed, he would be able to rectify it once he was well and able and⌠set aside the responsible party.
however, he did not expect one problem.
and that would be you.
he knew you were asking to see him. he knew, he knew, he knew, but he refused to let you in. you were not disrespectful â you had only asked once a day, which happened to be every day in the afternoon. he had picked you specifically because you were too quiet to be annoying. however, his own perfect, pristine, and proper plan had stabbed him in the back. he had never considered that the perfect, pristine, and proper wife would be this dutiful to him, checking in once a day on his condition and to speak with him. despite his illness, he laughed at himself â leave it to him to not expect the expected: the hand-selected dutiful wife would, in fact, be dutiful.
he had to put an end to it. he couldnât keep saying no for another week. how was he expected to get better if you kept bothering him?
so he let you in. this once. just this once. he reasoned that if he let you in this once, you would be less persistent. just this once â and another problem would cease to plague his mind.
just this once, he chanted in his head. just this once.
he sat up straighter, and attempted to shape his hair so it wasnât terribly unkept. he reasoned that if you saw him appearing to be healthy, you wouldnât feel the need to come back. he thought â
but he couldnât finish the thought.
because you walked in.
smelling like fucking lilacs.
lilacs, of all things. lilacs! not roses, not anything else â lilacs. he did not hate lilacs, but he despised the actual flower. only beautiful for so long before it died and the stench was intolerable. an inconvenience. a nuisance. a guaranteed future problem.
however, when you gifted him with a small smile â you realized why small shows of beauty were so valuable in this world. no one else saw your smile â except for those closest to you. people he hand selected to be around you to prevent future problems. he realized then â he had more control and ownership over your smile than either of you thought.
he was so stunned by your smile he didnât even notice the tray of tea and cakes in your hand. you took a few steps towards him and he shifted in place.
âi brought your favorites,â you spoke softly. âi know you should rest â i just wanted to ask if there was anything i could do to make your recovery easier.â
âno, thank you,â he replied, voice raspy. âi should be well in a few days.â
you nodded and offered an uneasy smile. his eyes flickered over to how once you had set down the tray on his beside, you slowly wiped the palm of your hands down the front of your dress. your eyes were cast absentmindedly in front of you, on the wall â and he could tell something was plaguing your thoughts.
he then also realized there was a book on the tray, much to his dismay.
âsomeone had mentioned that this was your favorite author. this was published a few days ago,â you began. âi understand that you have been experiencing headaches, and may find it difficult to read⌠so i wanted to offer to read aloud for you, in case you found these walls dull.â
you smiled â it was an attempt at a joke. he smiled back, but only to be polite. âtoday i find myself wanting to sleep. i appreciate your offer.â
you smoothed your hands over your dress once more before nodding and forcing a smile. âiâll leave you to it, then.â
you did not bid him farewell â and he found himself wondering if he was annoyed or grateful. you simply exited the room, and let the door shut softly behind you.
he scrunched his eyes at the door, swallowing hard.
however, he didnât understand why.
he had wanted this. the perfect wife â knowing when to take a hint and frankly, fuck off. you had done that, perfectly well â so why was he pissed?
he then found himself glaring angrily at his favorite tea cakes. the swap of sugar for honey, another one of his favorites. his favorite author, a book he was excited to read when he was better. he knew that you hadnât asked about him â he employed people with the requirement to let him know when you were asking questions. he knew your every outward thought and concern, and sometimes even the ones that werenât shared aloud because they were so evident on your face.
and then he realized: you noticed things like he noticed things.
however, he knew why he went out of his way to notice things, but why did you?
his jaw clenched as he glared angrily at the wall in front of him. he picked up a tea cake and chewed it aggressively, swallowing it half-intact. he coughed at the barely there food, anger rising further to his flushed cheeks.
he needed to understand how, and he most certainly needed to understand why.
he never went out of his way to get to know you, because he thought he already did. he thought he had you boiled down to one thing, and one thing only: passive. incapable of proving to be any sort of roadblock that was capable of getting in his way. now that he knew you shared something with him, what else was shared? was there something he had to look out for? was there something he missed? was he wrong about you?!
he had to know. he had to.
to do that⌠he called you back that evening. it was two hours before midnight, and he knew you were awake. despite having separate chambers, he knew your daily schedule. you would be reading at this moment, and he would ask you to read for him.
as if on cue, he heard a soft rapping on the wood of the door. he beckoned you in, and you entered the room. you were clad in a night dress with a matching robe over it, all pink silk. this time, he returned your smile.
"i apologize for the late hour," he spoke. "i hope you had not retired for the night."
you shook your head, your tendrils of perfect hair shaking slightly. "i was reading. i am glad you sent for me â can i get you anything?"
"i was hoping the offer to read for me was still on the table," he rasped. "i find myself unable to sleep."
you blinked once, staring at him. in an instant, a small smile was threatening to overtake your face into a large one. you cast your eyes down to a blushing manner, but his eyes narrowed slightly on your face. what would you get out of reading for him? what we he not seeing? what did he miss?
"of course," you responded. "i have not had a chance to read anything by this author. i am glad i have the chance now."
why. why. why.
he did not show his discontent. he simply rested back against the pillows as you reached for the book on his bedside table. you sat down on a chair on his side, and you crossed your legs. he eyed the small portion of the exposed, soft skin of your legs and wondered if your new ploy would be to try and seduce him. however, you quickly covered your skin with the extra material over your robe and placed the book in your lap. once opened, you read for him.
he was not listening to what you were saying, but he was listening to how you said it. the tone, the enunciation, the pauses, and the speed. he wanted to find some clue as to why you had made it a point to be at his beck and call, and he wanted to see how long the act would last until it dropped.
the act would drop. it always did.
the hour would approach midnight before he found that he could not discern anything from how you were reading aloud. his plan did not yield the results intended, as you had not broken from fulfilling his task for two hours. two hours. you had not stopped out of boredom or exhaustion, nor to talk to him. you were poised, soft, and he hated to admit it... but sweet. he found your voice sweet, and he hated it.
and he fucking hated himself for it.
he needed this to end so he could plan further. out of necessity, he yawned. if you were to apt at picking up clues, then hopefully you would believe that he was finally tired. you had succeeded in his given task, and you were free to go.
but you had kept reading for him.
he grew angry.
when you had paused to breathe, he spoke up. "I think i am able to sleep now. thank you, sweetheart, for indulging me."
your eyeline raised with your eyebrows, almost out of surprise. you either were not expecting him to ask you to stop, or you did not want to stop. he wondered which, and if that would answer his ultimate question.
"my apologies, i should've inquired sooner," you replied. "he is a very talented writer... i found myself enjoying his perspective."
you grabbed a piece or scrap paper from his bedside table, and tucked it in between the pages where you left off.
"most people would fold the corner," he remarked, eyes drifting closed â a show.
you smiled. "i didn't want to ruin the integrity of your book. goodnight, coriolanus."
she left with another smile â and all he was left with was confusion, and rage.
the next morning, he found himself wanting to call you back in for a further rouse interview. he would have if he had a plan in place.
that was the second thing about you that annoyed him: you annoyed him to the point where he wanted to act without a plan in place. a loss of control âwhich he was highly against.
that would have to be righted immediately.
he spent the morning reading the pages that you had already read to brief himself as if he was listening last night. he reasoned with himself that the best course of action would be to ask you to read to him again to see if you had grown comfortable enough to let a few of your true colors slip.
they always slip.
the sudden task that was presented to him gave him a new bout of energy that he needed to inch closer to recovery. it gave him the push he needed to be closer to walking out of this room and continue to run panem, and he was lost grateful to you for giving it to him â almost. at the moment, you were a problem â and that needed to be corrected. immediately.
he found comfort in control, so he was very content with routines. he had grown accustomed to bracing himself for your check-in in the afternoon. however, it did not come until the approaching hours of the evening had almost descended upon the capitol. he waited, and waited, and waited â so long that he considered asking you to come for himself. the hour would approach dinnertime when you had finally asked about his well-being, and he sent for you.
how dare you ask so late in the day, as if you didn't care? he allowed you access to his life that he had denied you for so long, and you return his kindness with carelessness? this would not do. this most certainly would not do.
you had knocked on his door, and he had to stop himself from sounding to eager. he permitted you entry, and you entered with the same soft smile.
"good evening," you greeted.
"hello," he replied, voice still raspy from his sickness.
"I wanted to ask if you need anything," you announced.
he offered a small smile. "i enjoyed our time last night. perhaps you would read for me, again?"
your eyes fell to the floor in a blush. "of course. I was hoping to read more of the book eventually. i found it intriguing."
you sat down in the chair and pulled the book in your lap. as you were opening it, he spoke, "i thought when you had not checked-in in the early afternoon you found the book dull â afraid i would ask for you to read it for me again."
you shook your head as you smiled. "i like his writing very much â i was concerned as to whether i had prevented you from sleeping the night prior, and didn't want to disturb you further."
he swallowed. "why would you have disturbed me?"
your eyes glanced upwards from the pages to rest on his face. coriolanus stared back as slight concern washed over your features, making your lips part and your eyes widen. your tongue darted out from between your lips, and smoothed over the skin of your bottom lip. you responded, "before you fell ill, we hadn't spent much time together and i understand that is because of your position â but, to be frank, i wanted to respect your space.â
your answer perplexed coriolanus. he wanted to find out what type of person you were â and your answers were not yielding the expected results. there was no obvious form of manipulation in your words, which then worried him. were you smarter than he believed you to be? were you as cunning as him? more so?
so he went with what was natural: manipulation.
âi apologize my station has not granted us the freedom to get to know each other further,â he replied, holding your gaze. âit is a regret of mine.â
you smiled in an affirmative manner, like you didnât believe him but accepted his answer anyway. this expression arose the same feelings he now detested your presence for: he acted without calculating his actions and the outcome they would produce.
âwhat troubles you?â he asked.
your lips parted and slightly quivered. you were not expecting him to ask.
âi-i was worried that i may not⌠please you,â you admitted. âthat⌠you may regret our union.â
âyou have been a kind and dutiful wife,â coriolanus spoke, eyes holding yours. âthere is no regret.â
there was that affirmative smile again. he found himself hating it â wishing it would be replaced by the warm, soft one.
âi guess i was hoping that, when i was married, the marriage would be more than⌠a union.â
your candor shocked coriolanus. he would never have expected you to say something⌠so out of turn.
âplease, forgive me,â you spoke, slightly laughing and waving your hand in the air. âthe hour is almost late and i was hoping to read more. do you still wish me to?â
âplease,â he answered and nodded.
you gave him a quick, thankful smile, and began reading.
this would be the second night coriolanus had not listened to a word you had said.
he had gotten his answer, and it was possibly as bad as the one he was actually afraid for.
you were good. pure, innocent, and your outlook on the world untainted. you were not striving to find a loose screw and let the empire fall. you wanted⌠to support the man who built and kept the empire together. it was worse than anything he couldâve ever imagined â you actually cared for him.
you cared for him, and now coriolanus snow was fucking terrified.
and yet... he had asked you to return to his chambers every night after that.
for research purposes, of course. only research purposes,
to read to him, but his goal was to learn more about you rather than the text.
you would sit there and read until he asked you to stop. when he did, you would close the book, smile at him, place it back on his nightstand, and bid him goodnight.
after, he would wrestle with the blankets and pillows in order to find out how to deal with this.
how had he not expected this?
his only fault was that he neglected to realize how far your shyness would go. you had grown comfortable with him â and you admitted that you wanted something more, something he always felt he could not give. you werenât shy â you just werenât open with people you werenât comfortable with.
he shouldâve known. he shouldâve. fucking. known.
he didnât know how to deal with this, if he was being honest with himself.
he told himself that he asked for you every evening to get to know you better, for his own sanity and safety; but then he began to realize he had found out everything he needed to know.
good and honest. how fucking unfortunate.
he saw a part of you, but now he needed to know more.
so what did he do? he sent you flowers. flowers. an arrangement of red roses and lilacs.
he hated himself for the lilacs.
he got somewhere with you when he had made the first move before â maybe this would yield more promising results.
however, it didnât.
all he received in return was an extra tray of food that had arrived in the afternoon. his favorite tea cakes, and a handwritten thank-you note detailed in your appreciation for the beautiful flowers. you signed your name, and that was it.
she doesnât make first moves, he thought. she responds to them.
he knew what he had to do.
he found himself feeling better that day â well enough to end his sick leave and return to his matters. dinner was approaching, and he sent for you to join him for a private dinner this evening.
he was washed, dressed, and coiffed within the hour.
he found you in the dining parlor waiting for him, inspecting his large bookcase. you were trying to reach a book a bit above where your height would allow, extending yourself onto your toes. coriolanus walked up behind you, towering over you, and retrieved the book for you.
you glanced up at him with wide eyes. âthank you, coriolanus.â
âwhat intrigued you?â he asked, grinning softly.
âfirst one i couldnât reach. i was working my way up.â you smiled at him, and then the book. âplease â you must be hungry. let us eat.â
you sat down at the table across from him. dinner manners were rather stiff and uncomfortable, but your upbringing that was similar to coriolanusâ prevented you from straying from them. you ate in silence for a few moments before you spoke.
âhow do you like his new book?â you asked.
coriolanus cleared his throat. âi find it riveting. i wouldnât have been able to read it for some time if it hadnât been for you.â
you smiled at your plate, blushing. âhis points are very interesting. i was never very interested in politics â so the insight of someone so heavily involved with them is very informative. do you find that your opinions align with his? or does he not share your perspective?â
he appreciated your willingness to engage with him about topics you werenât very fond of. an underrated trait, not found very often â he had to admit.
âa bit of both,â he responded. âthe one thing he does not discuss is how important it is to have a certain type of person or persons in your regime that allows the flow of success to continue.â
you nodded. âyou have built a strong administration â iâm sure he would admire what you have to say.â
âwhat do you believe?â he asked. âabout partnerships?â
you swallowed, contemplating your answer. âi think⌠a successful partnership is where everyone is complimented by another. for instance, someone is better at briefing documents rather than the presentation of them, and another is the opposite.â
âwhich one are you?â coriolanus inquired.
you paused once more, folding your lip under. he realized that was a sign you were uncomfortable â unaware of how to proceed. after a moment, you answered, âi feel the most confident under a strong leader. i prefer to be behind the scenes. minute details are easier to be taken care of that way. while you and i are different, i respect you for being the strong leader panem needed. i am sure the majority would agree with me.â
now was the time.
âit is easy to be strong when oneâs wife makes sure they are well,â he replied, eyes resting on your face. âi hope you know i appreciate your willingness to accept change and make sure needs are met.â
you smiled at him once more, then turned back to your food.
damn, he thought. didnt bite.
âand for being the companion i⌠didnât think i would come to enjoy the company of,â he added.
you glanced up at him then, astonishment written in your eyes as plain as the words on the paper you read for him every night. âmay i ask you⌠a question?â
he nodded.
âdid you believe you wouldnât enjoy my company before, or after you had first met me?â
âi donât understand.â
you swallowed, clearing your throat. âwere you⌠wary of the idea of marriage, or wary of me?â
your gaze did not break from his. you were braver than he thought.
âmarriage,â he answered honestly, hoping to witness your reaction.
there was the affirmative smile â the one he hated. âthank you for â for being honest.â
your eyes didnât wait for a response. you turned back to your food, and left him dumbstruck.
âi hope i have not displeased you,â he stated.
âno, coriolanus,â you spoke. âif i am being honest⌠i was wary i would not be suitable for you. if i have not displeased you, then i am well.â
âbut you stated you wanted more,â he countered, tone even.
âi hoped we would⌠spend time together,â you answered. âand we have.â
it was coriolanusâ turn to be at a loss for words. what would this admission relay? it only solidified what he was afraid of â you wanted a marriage filled of love, and he was not prepared for that. ever.
âthe flowers were beautiful,â you spoke, interrupting his thoughts. âthank you for sending them.â
âyour lilac perfume is a wonderful addition to the capitol,â he spoke, unsure where this had come from. âi wanted you to know that.â
you weren't supposed to say that you weren't supposed to tell the truth you weren't supposed
you smiled at him appreciatively, that accompanied a slight twinkle in your eye. you were quick to return to eating, but coriolanus couldnât stop staring at your face. he realized then that was his new favorite smile.
there was a moment, a small moment, where he wondered whether it would be such a crime if he did allow himself to enjoy your company more than he had. in that moment, he couldnât think of how it would go wrong. for that moment, you were a simple, low-maintenance, beautiful woman on the other side of the table with him that just liked spending time with him â and he enjoyed that you werenât a problem. would it so bad if he entertained the idea?
he immediately cut himself off. of course it was a bad idea.
once dinner has finished, he had requested to walk you back your chambers. if time spent together was what kept you at bay, he could manage that. he most certainly could.
when the pair of you had approached the door, you stopped for a moment and paused reaching for the handle. you spoke, âwould you⌠like to come in?â
ânot tonight,â he rasped. he gave you a polite smile. âanother time.â
he watched as you blinked your eyes a few times and your lips quivered. you didnât meet his gaze, for it fell â in what appeared to be embarrassment.
oh.
you invited him in to⌠toâŚ
that he had not expected.
before you had the chance to leave, he swooped down and grabbed your chin in his thumb and forefinger. he pressed his lips to yours ever so softly, holding it there. the moment your breath caught in your throat, there was a strange feeling inside his chest that made him feel like heâd like to quell your worries by catching you off guard another time. and another. and another. and another. he couldnât have you feeling rejected, no â not when he didnât want to reject you. he needed heirs, sure â but they could wait. he would contemplate how long later.
once he pulled back, you smiled. inside you were bursting, and you wanted to hurry behind a closed door so he could not see your reaction. he continued to hold your chin and gaze at your face. feeling brave, you looked him in the eye as you bid him goodnight and went into your room.
you left him standing outside your door, facing its wood paneling.
what was he to do?
he wanted to keep you as emotionally far away as possible to avoid anything like this occurring. he was prepared for people who had an ulterior motive⌠not a young woman who only wanted to be good to her husband.
the worst part was⌠not every part of him wanted him to keep you away.
would it be so bad, if he had actually courted you?
you were not anyone from his past, no. you were not irresponsible and impulsive, and you could be trusted to remain within a designated role and space. you were rarely outspoken â you never strayed from your cue cards, nor did you get smart in private. you never spoke out of turn, which coriolanus always knew â this was just the first time he was more turned on than he was just grateful.
he reasoned a reward was in order.
he found his knuckles wrapping on the door before he could stop himself.
the small movements inside your apartments stalled for a moment, pulled taut like a string in an instrument. he could picture you â standing still and silent, waiting for an explanation.
then he heard footsteps approaching the door before the door handle turned. when you opened the door, the first thing he saw was your eyes.
those big, beautiful eyes that looked at him with surprise â and the slightest bit of hope. coriolanus would most likely try to convince himself that he stayed completely still to exercise a form of control over you â but deep down, he would never be able to believe that completely.
however⌠when you reached out with your soft, delicate hand, and pulled at his own â it didnât matter why he did it, because he won.
he shut the door behind him, keeping your gaze.
âi would be coy and ask if we could spend time together in a... different way than usualâŚâ you began, sighing. âbut up until this moment i was convinced we would neverâŚâ
coriolanus was in no mood to quell insecurities and anxieties. he understood that words could not compare to actions, and so he would do just that.
coriolanus stepped forward, and pressed his large hands against the sides of your face. for a split moment â you almost looked terrified. he usually relished in that look from others, but with you it only made him concerned â angry, even.
âi donât know what it is about you.â his voice was shaky. it was the first moment in your entire marriage that coriolanus had shown even a shred of weakness. âyou smile, you obey, you take my transgressions like theyâre fucking sweets. why?! tell me!â
your big, round eyes were blown wide as your brow was knitted together. your lips were parted in an innocent manner, and it only fueled his anger. one of your hands came up to gently lay across the back of his. âcoriolanus â have you ever considered that i just wanted to get to know you?â
his eyes searched yours like they were an important document and he couldnât believe what bullshit he was reading. his lips pursed in a manner that suggested a sour taste, and you felt your joy slipping, slipping, and slipping.
âcoriolanus â if you want to go, then go.â your voice was breaking. you knew he was a cool, hard man â but this? this? it was almost too much. âyou donât have to stay if you donât ââ
he couldnât take your nonsense anymore. he shut you up with a kiss.
he smashed your lips together like it was the first thing he shouldâve done when he walked back into the room. a squeal died in your throat at the contact, but coriolanus held you there and upright. both of your hands found the firmness of his chest for balance. when he pulled away â he barely did. he kept his lips an inch away from yours as little tuffs of air pushed past. he leaned his forehead against yours, almost bonding the two of you.
âmy greatest displeasure will be making you regret this,â he rasped, eyes screwed shut.
your breathing began to hasten as you contemplated your next words. you began to stroke coriolanusâ hands with your thumbs, hoping to coax him. âyou say that like itâs inevitable.â
âit is not far from,â he choked through anger and sadness.
you couldnât help but stare back at him as he almost glared at you â but then you realized that wasnât the case. he wasnât glaring at you â he was glaring through you. whatever traumatized him, whatever made him so distrustful of the world around him and the people in it⌠you realized then that you represented all of that to him. you had to be different. you had to show him that you were different than all of that.
âiâve trusted you,â you whispered, almost pleading. âi would like for you to try and trust me. please, coriolanus⌠iâve never asked you for anything â just this once ââ
coriolanus shook his head, dismissing you. âitâs corio.â
he slammed his lips to yours. his kiss was that of a fight; burning with every cut of anger, frustration, desperation, and sadness in his soul. you werenât sure if he accounted for your inexperience, but you let him lead as you swallowed all of his suffering. you knew you may never be everything you wanted to be for him â but for this moment, or for whatever he would allow â you could be his escape, and he could be yours.
just this once, you both thought. just this once.
his hands were on both sides of your face, caging you in as you were at the mercy of his bittersweet affection. you tried to keep up with him, almost afraid that you wouldnât be enough for him â but corio didnât care. he couldnât have cared less as he backed you into the foot of the bed. he didnât stop kissing you as the back of your legs hit your soft mattress, and you were forced to sit down.
with his tongue tangling with yours, you managed to lift your hands to the top buttons of his shirt. he batted your hands away and went to work on his own buttons. you reached behind for your zipper to your dress and attempted to undue it.
corio then pushed your hands away with that too â ripping the zipper down its track and pushing the sleeves down your shoulders.
âcorio ââ you gasped through the kiss, struggling to keep up with him.
he pulled away for a short moment, staring into your eyes. âi have denied myself being with you for so long â nothing is stopping me now.â
he held the glare, and you could only stare back at him in fright. however, that was when you realized that he had felt the same way, or at least similar â you both wanted each other, and had been scared to approach the other. your heart filled with warmth, threatening to explode, but all you could do was nod.
he seemed to calm down then, glancing down towards your lips where he prodded your bottom lip with the tip of his numb. âi have wondered for so long what it would be like to kiss my perfect wife â and now that i know, i donât think iâll ever give it up.â
you smiled at that. âcan i tell you what i have been wondering?â
his eyes met yours once more, almost a warning. you didnât falter, though. he replied, âyes?â
âiâve wondered what it would be like to please you,â you spoke softly, a pink hue rising to your cheeks.
his flat look broke then, softening. a smirk greeted his features and you could see his confidence in himself rise. âmy lovely wife wants to please me?â
âyes,â you spoke, holding your breath. âif youâll let me.â
bright and striking, flames of mischief came to light in his irises. emotions of excitement and fear rose within you, and you werenât sure which was stronger. all you could do was watch as your strong, powerful, larger than life husband stood over you, chin raised, looking down his nose at you, as he unbuckled his belt. his pants and briefs, once around his ankles, were discarded â but you didnât see that. you couldnât look away from his eyes â holding you, and your gaze, in place.
it was like you were an enemy he was testing. you didnât know what he expected, let alone what would make him happy â but you hoped his expectations were slightly lower in light of your inexperience. you swallowed the hard rock of nervousness in your throat, stood up, and gestured for him to sit down on the edge of the bed. he raised an eyebrow at you, but complied. you sat down on your knees in between his, and waited patiently for direction.
âcan youâŚâ you began. âcan you teach me?â
he smirked once more. âtake me in your hand.â
you bent your head lower, and grabbed him by the base. he was hard and warm in your hand as you saw him trying to fight the twitching feeling in his limbs. his muscles were tight, afraid to show weakness. you grew uncomfortable â you didnât want him weak, but you did want him to feel comfortable enough with you to enjoy a fucking blowjob.
holding his muscle upright, you stuck your tongue out and licked around the tip of his cock. he was salty, but smelled so masculine after a long day. his scent infiltrated all of your senses and had captured your attention. it made you hungry, greedy â so much so that you closed your lips around his cock and began to suck.
he jumped then. âteeth,â he spat.
you paled in embarrassment and fright â but didnât allow your fear to show for long. you adjusted your tongue and lips â so that your top lip was folded under your top set, and your outstretched tongue covered your bottom set. hollowing out your cheeks, you took him into your mouth once more.
a low hum filled his chest.
you couldnât see him, and could barely hear him â corio was being a selfish lover and not letting you know whether or not he was enjoying himself. he told you once before you were doing something wrong, so you tried to trust that he would tell you.
that was easier said than done, frankly. with your free hand, you reached up and began to massage his sack in the soft skin of your palm. the hum in his chest turned deeper and louder, and you felt his hips twitch once.
maybe it shouldn't have mattered that he wasn't vocal â but it wasn't like he was shy. you would not fault him for not doing something he didn't want to do, but it was like he was denying you that. if you were making him feel good, and he was fighting the volume of his moans â how fucking dare he deny you of that! there you were, constantly at his beck and call, and he couldn't even freely moan with you? you were obedient, quiet, grateful, everything he wanted â but this? this? too much. absolutely too much of an ask.
you had to do something.
"mr. president," you cooed, twisting your soft tongue around the tip of his cock. "you're awfully quiet above me."
he let out a laugh as he struggled to keep his composure. one of hands found the back of your head as his fingers struggled to tangle themselves in between your strands. they were tugging and pulling, but there was no strength in his grip. his grip â wouldn't catch. couldn't catch. corio, you husband â struggled day in and day out to keep the control in the capital and inside his castle. there was a part of you that believed he just needed to let go, let someone else be in control â but you were his pretty little wife after all. you had until death to try everything. losing control could wait, because tonight... tonight was about making corio the grateful one for once.
you let your loose grip run circles up and down the length of his cock. his shaft was wet and thick, begging the attention of the light from above so the skin was able to glisten. the tip of his cock, red and angry, almost neglected â never had you seen something so delicious, nor deserving of affection. your lips, swollen, wrapped themselves around the tip of his cock as you sucked. notes of salt and sweat mixed together on your tongue, and you hummed at the taste.
"taste sweet, mrs. snow?" you heard from above you. your eyes glanced up to find corio's eyes glazed over with pleasure. his eyelids were drooping over, and all you could think about how badly you wanted to make him close his eyes in bliss. your eyes watched his eyes, but his eyes watched the way your mouth sucked him in. "being so good for me. let your husband see what else you can do."
your ears perked in interest. you didn't know what he meant, but you were intrigued to see if he would teach you.
"please... show me what you like," you spoke, extending your neck as he lowered his face to yours.
"so eager to please..." he spoke, staring down at you in awe. his hand slid down for your scalp to cup your cheek. he looked into your eyes like he was studying you â searching for something surface level. a flaw, or something good... you weren't sure. "i suppose some would say i'm lucky."
you didn't like the sound of that... but you didn't let it show. you gave him a hint of a smile. "i don't think it matters what anyone else thinks. i think what matters is you telling me what you like... so you can decide if you're lucky or not."
he chuckled at that, but his laugh was reserved. always holding back, your husband. "you really want to be a good little wife for me... don't you?"
you fell into the strength behind the hand on your face and keened into his touch. his hand was warm against your skin. "please, corio... please let me."
he stood then, and your gaze raised with his body. you gazed up at him as he stared down at you. there his eyes went again â searching yours. he stood closer to you then, bending down slightly. "it would please me if, at any point, you told me to stop because of the pain. i don't want to hurt you." his voice was low and soft then, immediately striking you. "can i trust you to do that? hmm?"
"i'll tell you," you replied, nodding your head. "i promise."
"never break a promise you make to me," he warned.
you nodded your head once more, unsure how to proceed. he led you over to the side of the bed where he gestured for your to lie down. with the passing of time, you became more and more aware of how bare you both were in front of each other. you were ready to let down every fence of insecurity for the man before you... but there were still walls of his that threatened to come down. he was hot and cold every other moment, it seemed... and you werenât even sure where to begin.
âhusband,â you spoke, unsteadily, as he found his place between his legs. âyou seem so⌠distrustful of me. what can i do? please, corio, i just want this moment to be special for us â for you.â
there his eyes went â searching yours again. it was like he was rereading a page in a book over and over, hoping to find the hidden message in the black and white scripture. his eyes, going back and forth, appeared to be looking over unclear smudges and scribbles as his lips began to purse. you almost said something â stopped him from withdrawing into himself, but he moved before you could.
he sat back against the pillows, which faced a mirror across your bed. you rose curiously, hoping that he would finally give you some direction. he simply took your hand in his, and gestured for you to come closer. âcome,â he spoke.
in his lap, maybe? you thought curiously. you went to throw your leg over his, before he stopped you. with a furrowed brow, you watched as he adjusted you so your back laid against his chest.
âdo as i say,â he whispered against your ear, sending shivers up and down your spine.
your eyes were cast to the side, his outline in your peripheral vision. you nodded, letting your lips fall apart. you felt one of his hands on the soft skin of your thigh, grazing upwards towards your hips. you almost let your eyes fall closed, hoping to lose yourself in the sensations, before corio stopped you.
with that same hand, he reached upwards and grasped your chin between his fingers. your eyes shot open as he moved your head to now face the mirror, and the pair of you in it.
shallow breaths were pushing past your lips as you stared into the mirror. your cheeks were flushed, your hair in a slight disarray, and your lips were swollen. with a flutter of your eyelashes, your gaze flickered towards corioâs reflection. your husband was always perfect â so even the slight persuasion from tidiness was a remarkable sight to you. his eyes were focused â unable to remain cool, calm, and collected as usual.
his eyes, you thought. his eyes will always tell me.
âyou will watch,â corio spoke suddenly, voice hard. âyou will keep your eyes on my hands. you stray, and i leave. understand?â
you nodded, looking into his eyes through the mirror.
he cocked an eyebrow.
âyes,â you spoke, almost breathless. âi understand.â
corioâs hand then found its way to your center. the tips of his finger tips, soft and hot, lightly drew a line up and down your slit. your eyes wouldnât leave the mirror â focused on his fingertips. it was like your skin knew every correct button to tap, tap, tap. every part of you was so sensitive, so keen to his touch that you were embarrassed. you felt so pathetic against his chest, bent to his will â but you wouldnât have had it any other way. the voice in your head was whining and hoping you would give in, just give in, let down your guard, give in, forget manners. you wanted to keep your composure as long as possible, but when corioâs middle finger found your clitâŚ
oh⌠you were done for.
one of your hands immediately snapped up to find corioâs bicep and clutch onto whatever foundation he could give. you didnât dare let your eyes meet his, even in the mirror â what if he stopped? what, huh? what then? when you were the closest you had been ever? you couldnât allow yourself to be greedy, not when he was being oh, so selfless.
the circles he was drawing taunted your ability remain calm. he rolled your tiny clit underneath the weight of the tip of his finger and pressed down with every circle. it pushed, and pulled, and fucking pried at every fiber of your being. you could only force yourself up and back against corio, whining like a pathetic mess.
ârunning away from me, my sweet?â he whispered in your ear. âwhen iâm being so kind?â
his words bit at your ear, reminding you of your position in his world. your eyes were threatening to drift closed, hoping, praying, that corio would let you slip this once from your responsibilities. naive, you were, to believe that.
âremember our deal, wife,â he darkly cooed in your ear. âone request was all i had. i refuse to be denied it.â
âi know, i knowâŚâ you whined, rolling your hips with his hand. âit just feels so good, corio⌠iâve never⌠no oneâs everâŚâ
âi can tell you never knew how bad your body would crave it,â he spoke, nipping at your earlobe. âeven your pussy obeys me, drenching my fingers. too sweet for this world, arenât you?â
âjust wanna be sweet for you, corio,â you whined as your vision began to blur.
the approaching orgasm was anything but a warm and fuzzy feeling around you. it was hot and jagged â making your muscles jerk, yet force your hips to roll into every movement of corioâs. the cloud over your brain felt like a warm haze of the finest whisky or tobacco the capital could offer. you were numb, drunk, and unable to process the world around you unless it was corio. his touch, his taste, his scent, his look, his orders⌠everything was setting you off and keeping you in place all at once. your body was hot to the touch, feverish as it tried to fight your sophistication and just fucking â
âthatâs it, sweetheart. so focused on the mirror you canât even find the strength to let go for me,â he spat, pressing a kiss to your cheek and breathing in your scent. âride my hand like the good girl you are. you wanted to show me, remember?â
tears were brimming your eyes and blurring your vision. your teeth were gritted and bared for him. one of his hands came up to loosely grasp your throat as your hips began to spasm. it was so much, too much, so much â
âcorio, please ââ you cried. âplease let me look away. i canât â i have to cry, i canât ââ
there was no softness in his movements against your aching clit. corio had now employed two fingers to dip into your core, collect your slick, and rub it along your sensitive bud in harsh circles. it sent your mind through a suffocating tube and gasping for air. you were begging, pleading â unsure what would happen if you were denied the ability to finish in peace. you began to cry in frustration and fear, so sensitive to the touch and his approval.
âcorioâŚâ you whimpered. âplease, please let meâŚâ
âdo it,â he spat, holding your throat and kissing your face. âshow your husband how fucking messy you can be for him.â
you grasped onto him and threw yourself back.
it was like a rollercoaster. twists and turns, yanking your body every which way. corioâs body rocked with yours as the sensations climbed and fit into every single one of your limbs. your lungs, burning, were screaming for air as you tried to fight for consciousness. the world was white, milky, foggy â unable to navigate, let alone exist in. all you could feel was corioâs body moving with yours and coaxing you through the most insane moment of your entire life.
tears fell down your face, and you struggled to conceal it. corio refused to let you hide from him. he bent his face low to yours and pressed the side of his face against the side of yours.
his breaths were heavy, similar to yours.
âcorioâŚâ you whimpered, almost whining.
âi know, sweetheart,â he cooed. âso good for me, werenât you? asking so obediently and politely.â
you nodded, pressing your forehead against his. âiâm sorry that i was ââ
âwhatâre you sorry for?â he demanded.
you clenched your jaw. âi was â i am â iâm worried i was too much â i was so â out of control ââ
he shut you up with a kiss. coriolanus snow refused to allow you to continue, or else he knew he would be offended if he had let you finished.
âi wanted that,â he stated. âevery bit of that. what, you donât find it agonizing to be prim and fucking proper every day?â
you laughed uneasily, a bit spooked by his outburst of aggression. âi thought you â i thought that was what you wanted from me.â
he shook his head. âout there â itâs necessary. in here, when itâs only the two of us? donât ever hide yourself from me. you must promise.â
you swallowed as your haze began to disappear. âonly if you promise the same."
you saw his jaw pulse from the corner of your eye. âi promise.â
âi promise,â you returned.
you quickly reconnected your lips. you couldn't let the moment slip away. you needed to seize him while he was there â trusting you for the first time in your entire relationship. you found both of your hands on the side of his face and held him to you. corio fought for control, but you gave in immediately. the need for him to need you was stronger and more satisfying that anything else you could've experienced in that moment. you turned around, straddling his lap and pushing him down to the bed.
everything you were doing was improper: grabbing your husband, forcibly kissing him, sitting in his lap, pushing him down... you almost stopped. you almost gave into the insecurity and made friends with with meekness and shyness once more. however, you made a promise â and you intended to keep it.
"i want you inside me, corio," you whispered against his lips. "please, i want to feel you â"
"again, sweetheart?" he ripped himself from your lips to grunt out his teasing. "one taste, and you're addicted?"
you hummed approval against his lips, tangling your tongue with his. with one hand on the back of your head, holding your face to his, corio's other hand fished between the pair of you and grasped his leaking cock in his hand. the tip was red and swollen, aching for some stimulation or attention. he spread his precum over his tip and with a firm hand, corio slid his cock inside of you.
you arched your back away from corio. the feeling of him being fully sheathed inside of you bent your attention in every which was. both of your hands cradled the back of his head into your chest, where he found himself nestled between your breasts. his breaths were hot and heavy, moist against your skin. his swollen lips found one of your perky nipples and sucked it into his mouth, caving to his primal urges. coriolanus snow wanted every part of you for himself, and needed to place that claim on every part of your body. he wanted your thighs to shake and ache from being locked around him, your fingers to tremble from your hard grip, and he wanted your lips to be bruised from how hard he made you bite them. and, most of all, he wanted every loud moan to rip itself from your aching throat and fill the perfectly painted walls of this damned room.
he cursed you when you threw a hand over your mouth, and he immediately ripped it away. "don't you fucking dare," he spat.
you ignored him. he was your husband, and he was the scariest man you would ever meet, and yet you ignored him. most of all, your hips ignored him. they began to roll against his own the best they could for their inexperience. up, down, and grinding down was the best they could manage before corio grabbed you by the flesh of your hips and moved you to his liking. and when your mouth parted and a loud cry made your throat shake when he twisted your hips forward, he knew he found the spot.
"do not ever deny me what i am owed," he spat, fucking into that spot that wrapped a tight band around your abdomen. "i want to hear how good i am making you feel, and i will. i get to hear. those are mine. i am owed those."
again, you ignored him. what did he expect when your eyes began to roll back into your head and you began to match his pace? you were close, you were so, so close...
that was when corio grabbed you by the chin, refusing to let up his pace. his eyes were full of darkness, yet focus. like he had found his prey. you tried to focus, tried to give him the respect the deserved... but you couldn't. your mind was swimming, and your arching cunt was dripping down his length and onto the skin of his pelvis. you were lost. so fucking lost.
"yours, corio!" you whined. "all yours. only yours."
his voice was gruff against your lips as his thrust became rougher. "say it again."
your eyes began to drift closed as you leaned your head into the crook of his neck, rolling your hips against his. his cock had found its way to the most sensitive and purest part of you and ripped down every wall you had. you sobbed, "yours, corio. only yours."
corio threw you off of him and your back hit the bed. he was on top of you in an instant. he threw your legs up and pressed them against your chest. with your ankles on his shoulders, he pushed himself inside of you and began to relentlessly punish your perfect fucking pussy.
"mine, you got that?" he spat against your ear. "i have watched you, day after day, put on this fucking act! perfect and proper â but i made a proper whore out of the most desirable woman in the capital, didn't i? and now she's mine â forever warming my bed."
"forever, corio," you whined. your sobs were music to his ears, going straight to his cock. your cunt was raw from the friction and slick, unsure if corio should stop or keep going â but you didn't let him guess. "inside me, corio, please... want it to bad. been so good for you..."
his hand was around your throat and demanding your attention. "as if i'd waste a drop when every man in the capital would be able to see you round with my child. you want that wife? my seed, my child? you want to be fully claimed by me?"
"yes," you cried, tears falling down your cheeks. "give it to me, husband, please â"
corio reached down in between your hips and rubbed your clit with whatever energy he had left. his thrust were growing sloppy, but his movements against your swollen bud were worse. he was hissing in your ear as he continued the assault against you. your moans were loud as they escaped your lips and filled the room, setting corio's skin on fire. sweat dripped down from his brow and down his neck to mingle with yours as your second orgasm of the evening began to approach. it snapped the rubber band in your lower belly and you immediately sobbed into corio's neck. his hips continued to rut in you, forcing you down onto the bed as he swallowed all of your sobs for himself. your nails dug into his back and down his spine, hoping to rip parts from him that he had taken from you.
when corio came, you were in a stupor. cock drunk with your mouth hanging open, dazed. when corio came, one of his hands grabbed your messy pile of hair, wrenching at the roots. he pulled you to the side to suck on the sensitive skin of your neck as he pumped your cunt full of his cum. your walls were hot and sticky, full of him, but it only caused the most sickeningly warm feeling to spread throughout you. every primal need of yours was satisfied, and corio could see every bit of it on your face. the pride that welled within your husband... shameful. no man should be in possession of such an ego boost like making the prettiest, more desired woman in all of panem break from all bounds of social etiquette. you were warm, and wet, and craving every bit of his touch, so he couldn't deny you... not anymore. not when he felt the same. with each sob that left your mouth, he felt a kick in the pit of his stomach as his balls throbbed. never in his life had a woman ripped from him what he had taken from her, cheeks hot and muscles worn out.
he would regret it in the morning, maybe, but not now. no â not now.
"husband, forgive me, but..." you spoke. "my mind is a mess. i don't think i can read to you this evening."
corio rolled his eyes and laughed. "that good?"
you pressed a kiss to his lips as you hummed in approval. "never wait that long to bed your wife again."
he chuckled darkly. "watch it, sweetheart."
---
love u guys sm sorry it was so long ty for reading love u love u love u
-L xooxoxooxox
#corio smut#coriolanus smut#coriolanus snow smut#corio snow smut#corio fic#coriolanus snow x reader#coriolanus x you#corio snow#coriolanus x reader#coriolanus snow#coriolanus fic#coriolanus imagine#corio imagine#the hunger games#lucy gray#sejanus plinth#young coriolanus snow
11K notes
¡
View notes
Text
Harvest Moon
Rating: Explicit. 18+ (Minors DNI) Pairing: Jackson Joel Miller x Female Reader Word Count: 3,100 Summary: It's Joel's birthday and you're going to make sure he has a good one. Warnings: smut, fluff, dancing in the kitchen to neil young, unprotected p in v, public-ish sex (but under a blanket), talking to neighbors while sitting on joel miller's cock, apocalypse birth control (pulling out), fingering, riding, joel has a filthy mouth, no use of y/n, not beta read.
A/N: I spent most of tonight adding 2,500 words to this barely written piece. Now it's two hours past my bedtime, but HAPPY BIRTHDAY JOEL MILLER!!! This can absolutely be read as a standalone, but, this is yet another singular smut entry for my Elks babies. This was originally going to be posted as a birthday celebration chapter for that, but I really wanted to give Joel his gift on his actual birthday. Happy birthday you gorgeous old man, you. Hope you like the porn I wrote about you. â¤ď¸đĽ´
Masterlist
đđđđ
Youâve been looking for the CD since you learned of Joelâs love of the song. Tommy did it, he actually did it. Somehow by some miracle he found the CD.Â
âNot a problem,â he gives you that same shy Miller lopsided grin. âMilt had it. Told me to tell you itâs yours to keep⌠said he owes you since you were his daughterâs favorite teacher ân all.â
âThanks Tommy,â you say, barely being able to contain your excitement, âthis is going to be amazing.â
âOf course. Should be thanking you really,â he shrugs. âItâs about time he had a good birthday.â
â
Joel said heâd be helping fix one of the greenhouses today, but youâre still scared to ruin the surprise as you unlock his door.Â
âJoel?â you yell out into the quiet, seemingly empty house.Â
No answer. Perfect.
Quick steps lead you to his CD player, the same one he first showed you how much he cared for you with. Now, itâs your turn to show him just how much he means to you. The disc tray opens and you place the CD into the system, you canât wait to surprise him.Â
â
âMore coffee?â you ask, holding up the percolator.
He nods and smiles, happily sitting at the table full from the steak, potatoes, and cornbread you made him. He had insisted on sharing the meat, but you refused, happy to let him enjoy the first taste of steak in over twenty years.
Your friend Helen got her boyfriend Greg to cut a small filet of steak from the newly butchered cow. She handed it to you with a knowing smile. Itâs nice to see everyone accept yours and Joelâs relationship.Â
You lean over his lap, and top his coffee cup off.Â
âHave I ever told you how much I love seeing you in a dress? Canât believe you got yourself all dolled up for me.â He surprises you by pulling you onto his lap.Â
âCareful!â you shriek, quickly placing the carafe on the table. âYes, you have⌠many times. That's why I wore it.â
âHmph,â he hums happily, burying his face into the crook of your neck, his arms wrapping securely around you. âThank you for dinnerâand everything sweetheart.â He presses a soft kiss to your skin.Â
âThatâs not all,â you giggle as he nips at a sensitive spot under your chin.Â
He chuckles, his breath warm against your skin. âYouâre so good to me.âÂ
You clutch his chin tilting his head up to meet your eyes. âYou deserve a happy birthday.â His big brown eyes search yours, like heâs forcing himself to believe it. âJoel, you do.âÂ
He rests his forehead against yours. âI love you,â he sighs warmly.
âI love you too. Now, I have something else for you,â you slip off his lap and head towards your backpack. âItâs something small, I promise.â
You return with a bundle of fabric held behind your back.Â
âRemember when you tore your favorite flannel and you tossed it in the rag bag?â
You place the flannel in his hands.
âWell, a certain girl named Ellie grabbed it for me. I mended it, reinforced the buttons, and sewed up a couple holes. Itâs not perfect, but itâs fixed.â
He holds the flannel up and inspects it. âThis isâwowâthisâI canât believe it.â He looks up at you, his eyes wide with adoration. âI was wearing this that first day I saw you, yâknow? This is so sweet sweetheart, thank you.âÂ
He likes it, you thank your lucky stars. Your handsome Joel, here with you on his birthday, allowing himself to be taken care of.Â
You know the story of his birthday, youâve retold the tale to yourself every night as you anticipated this day. Afraid to upset him, afraid to cross a line, but all youâve wanted to do is give him the world he so deserves.Â
It wasnât just you who thought of him today. Itâs Tommy finding the CD. Itâs Helen getting you the steak. Itâs Ellie grabbing the flannel from the rag bag. He deserves all of it.Â
âYouâre welcome,â you say with a kiss to his forehead. âNow, put it on. I have one more surprise.â
He slips the flannel on as you head to the living room. The CD waits in the stereo. You turn it on.
The soft guitar and brushes of a drum fills the air as you turn the volume up. Â
Joelâs huge smile greets you when you walk back into the kitchen.
âYouâ how?â he asks, unbelieving.Â
âAsked Tommy and he found it for me. Milt had his greatest hits. Now,â you reach your hand out to him, âmay I have this dance birthday boy?â
He chuckles and takes your hand, pulling you into him. The two of you sway along to the music, his strong arms enveloping you as your cheek rests against his warm chest. You can hear the steady thump of his heart beneath your ear. Your hands slip around his broad back, one of them trailing up to play with the soft curls at the nape of his neck. He sighs deeply before placing a tender kiss against the top of your head.Â
âThis is my favorite song,â he murmurs.
The sun has long since set, the singular lamp above the sink casts a warm dark amber glow across the kitchen Your shadows dance across the walls as you sway. He smells of coffee and sweet corn bread, like home and comfort.Â
He starts to hum then softly sing along. His deep voice reverberates through your ear, pressed against his heart.Â
âBecause Iâm still in love with you, I wanna see you dance again, Because Iâm still in love with you, On this harvest moonâ
You can hear the contentment in his voice as he holds you closer. Moving in synchronicity with each other, gently stepping across the small kitchen as the harmonica solo plays. If you could stay in this moment forever you would.
You tilt your head up, and his eyes meet yours. The smile he gives lights his face. Lines crinkling at the corner of his eyes, dimple sitting deep on his cheek, mustache curving with his plush upturned lips. He serenades you with the same lyrics as before, looking deep in your eyes.Â
âBecause Iâm still in love with you, I wanna see you dance again, Because Iâm still in love with you, On this harvest moonâ Â
His lips meet yours, thanking you with a gentle kiss. The man you love and adore, feels good on his birthday all because of you.Â
The song plays on repeat, the two of you dance together, Joel gently hums and sings along as the harvest moon rises above the mountains.Â
You gently pull away, unclasping his arms from around you.
âCome on birthday boy,â you say with a playful smile, âletâs go watch the stars.âÂ
â
You and Joel sit beneath a large plaid comforter on his porch. The early fall breeze that rolls down the mountainside leaves a chill in the air. The night sky is lit bright with the orange full moon. Most of Jackson is at the Harvest Moon Festival tonight, you can just make out the distant sounds of laughter and music flowing through the air from the main street on his porch. Ellie was especially thrilled about the teen sleepover happening at the Bison tonight, giving you both this rare moment of solitude in his backyard. She told Joel she knew he was in good hands with you for his birthday.Â
And he isâor at least youâre in his good hands.Â
âOh, god,â you softly whisper into the night, youâre so tense from keeping yourself quiet. The stars are a little harder to see tonight thanks to the ambient glow of the bright moon, and yet you see stars whenever you squeeze your eyes shut while fighting the urge to moan. Joelâs deft, large thumb rubs circles against your clit while you ride two of his thick fingers.Â
Heâs driving you crazy like this. His large body and the blanket wrapped around you, overheating all of your senses in this chilly night. Youâre completely covered, nobody would know that your legs are spread wide, one draped over his thick thigh while his hand is stuffed up your dress making you quake as he finger fucks you.
âEasy now, easy now,â he says nuzzling against your neck, his large nose charting a course across the sensitive skin. âGotta remember where we are. You're the sweet, innocent teacher 'n librarian here. Lotta people look up to you, canât have them knowinâ what my girl really likes when sheâs with me.â Your hips slow their movement, he makes up for it by pumping you harder. âSee, I can help, just gotta let me know you want it baby.âÂ
âWant to takeâneyughâcare of you,â struggles out of your mouth.Â
âYouâre taking care of me right now, sweetheart, touching you is my favorite thing to do.âÂ
âWant to go inside⌠w-want toâwantâto, want to feel you in my mouth,â you grip the straining bulge underneath the fly of his jeans.Â
âNot yet,â he sighs deeply when you squeeze harder. âLike seeing your skin glow in the moonlight. What youâre doinâ now is enough, want to enjoy my night with you.â
Your hold tightens around his cock as you fight harder to suppress the urge to scream into the night. His fingers angle up hitting your most sensitive spot and you feel like you could explode. Youâll be the fireworks to celebrate Joelâs birthday. A whimper is fought by biting your lip, itâs so hard to not scream. His brown eyes look almost black in the low light as he watches you struggle and blink rapidly.Â
âShh baby, youâre doing so good, beinâ so quiet, donât ruin it now. If anybody was out right now they could walk right on by and theyâd have no idea what Iâm doing to you under here.â
Youâve never done anything like this, so out in the open. Jackson is a peaceful town full of law abiding citizens, and right now youâre sitting on the back of the porch of Joelâs house getting felt up by him.Â
âJoel⌠IâIâm gonnaââ
âCum for me baby.â His hot breath hits your lips before sealing his mouth against yours. Your cunt spasms against his thick fingers, you feel set alight by your orgasm, overheated and burning. Maybe youâre glowing just as bright as the moon. His tongue dances with yours, swallowing all of your gasps and cries. Youâre sure at this point, anybody that walked by would know exactly what was happening between the two of you. You donât care, all you want is to feel Joelâs cock inside you.
âWant you, Joel, want you so bad,â you mew as his fingers rub against your sensitive folds.Â
âOkay baby, okay.â His fingers slip from your warmth before he brings his soaked digits to his lips. His eyes flutter shut when he tastes you.Â
âSweeter than birthday cake,â he declares before raising his hips and pulling his jeans down with a grunt. âCome here. Come sit on me.â
Your legs spread wide as you straddle his large lap with your back pressed against the warmth of his chest. He grips himself and moves the half hard heft of his cock against your soaked core, swirling his tip back and forth across your clit.Â
âTell me you want my cock,â he whispers against your neck, licking a line up to your ear. âTell me baby.â
âI-I want your cockâI need your cock Joel,â you beg.Â
âI know you do darling,â he chuckles deeply, lining himself up to your entrance.
The sounds of the festival go silent and the bright orange moon fades as you slowly sink down on his cock. Taking all of him, thick and throbbing into your tight cunt.Â
âThatâs my good girl,â he grits. âYour sweet pussy is taking me so well, isnât she?â
Clutching your bottom lip tightly between your teeth, you try to fight the moan his words bring up.
âOh, you must like that. Youâre squeezinâ me so hard sweetheart.âÂ
You set a pace, riding him gently under the moonlight, his fingers gripping your hips tight.Â
His hot breaths hit the back of your neck as your back molds even tighter to his front. His hand snakes down to rub your clit, small circles making your body meld even more against him.. The rhythm of his fingers and cock spearing you pulls another orgasm down from the ethers of space. Shivering, sweating, and stuttering Joelâs name, youâre trying to be good for him, trying to not scream into the night.Â
âThatâs my girl, grippinâ my cock so good, cumminâ all over me. Getting yourself nice and slippery so I can fuck you real good, huh?âÂ
âMmf,â is the only response you can muster. Your cunt flutters around him, and he doesnât relent, slowly fucking into you while his finger pulses against your clit.Â
The sound of two people conversing approaches. Your movements come to a halt, Joel stays still, his finger still resting against your sensitive bundle of nerves and his cock sitting deep inside you. Hank and Billie, the nice couple that lives three houses down from Joel, walk past the porch. Both look over and wave a greeting. Fuck.
âBeautiful moon, isnât it?â Hank says with a smile.Â
âQuite.â Joel responds. The rumble of his loud voice radiates through you. Â
âYou guys get any barbecue tonight?â Hank asks. âIt was really goââ
âWe stayed in,â Joel gruffly responds. He subtly knocks his hips into you causing a wave of sensation to hit against your already cock-drunk pussy.
Your nostrils flare with a deep exhale. Â
âOh, well, there will probably be leftovers tomorrow,â Billie offers. âTell them I sent you and theyâll give you the good stuff.â
âThanks Billie,â you breathlessly reply, wishing on every star youâve seen behind your eyelids, theyâll leave. âWe appreciate it.â
âBest be getting home,â Hank says, grabbing Billieâs hand. âWe both had a bit too much to drink!âÂ
Oh thank god.
âEnjoy your night,â Joel says plainly as he starts to slowly rock into you once they turn away.Â
To the eyes of your neighbors, you and Joel just look like a normal couple enjoying the night sky cuddled together under a blanket⌠little do they know heâs filling you with his thick cock under the shield.Â
âThat was close,â he whispers against your ear before nipping it.Â
Your giggle is cut off by a moan when he fucks into you harder.Â
âGuess we shouldnât take our time, donât want to get caught, now do we?â he asks.Â
âWe can justânyuhâgo inside,â you plead, wanting to be able to moan and scream Joelâs name in the comfort of his home.Â
âGimme one more baby, gimme one more,â he grunts against your neck. âAnd then Iâll take you into my home and fuck you.â
His hips pound against your body, his thrusts bucking into your core harder. âThatâs it baby, you really want me to take you in and lay you down ân fuck you, donât you?âÂ
âMmhmm,â you moan, your stomach tightening and thighs trembling as the universe splinters around you. Your orgasm rockets through your body. Color turns to black and white, noise falls silent. All that exists is Joel Miller and his big cock shattering you into a million pieces like your own personal big bang on the back of his porch.Â
âGood girl,â he groans, âletâs take this party inside.â
â
The plaid comforter is laid out on the kitchen floor. Your wobbly legs move your still blissed-out body to Joelâs stereo, starting âHarvest Moonâ on repeat all over again.Â
You lean against the kitchen entrance, admiring Joel as he rests atop the blanket, naked and supporting himself on his elbows. No man over fifty should ever look as good as him. Broad shoulders frame his strong arms, his chest has a smattering of dark hair that trails down to the slight bulge of his stomach. His cock rests in between his legs, still hard and shining with your slick. Heâs so gorgeous, and heâs all yours.Â
âCome here sweetheart,â his voice is gruffer. âLay down next to me.â
His dick twitches as you walk to the blanket and settle beside him.Â
He moves over you, covering you with his warmth as he engulfs himself in your slick heat. Your legs instinctually wrap around his waist allowing him to take more.Â
âJoel,â you moan. The angle allows his cock to push farther in and your walls to tighten harder against him.Â
âOoh, youâre so fucking wet, you hear that?â he asks incredulously. The squelch of your pussy soundtracks along to the song quietly playing in the background. âSounds so fucking good baby.âÂ
He gasps when buries himself to the hilt, soaking the curly hairs around the base of him with your wet.
Your body trembles as your hips meet his, his cock sliding in and out of your cunt at a brutal pace.Â
He takes no time to own you now behind the walls of his home. Your hands clutch at his wide back, sobs and screams of his name echoing out into the air as Neil Young softly sings in the background.Â
Youâre so full of him. His body surrounding you, his lips against yours, his cock pounding into your accepting cunt, his name chanting out of your mouth.Â
âYou want it baby?â he growls against your neck, his cock pumping in and out of your hole at a speed no man over fifty should be able to ever reach. âYou want my cum?âÂ
âC-cum Joel,â you cry, tears sprouting from your eyes as your fourth orgasm launches through you.Â
He gasps your name, pulling out of your tremorous pussy and shooting thick white ropes of cum across your pussy and stomach.Â
His sweat is slick against your overheated body, youâre a mess of sweat, orgasm, and love.Â
He kisses you, his tongue licking against yours before he rolls off you. His chest rising and falling as he catches his breath. âFuck,â he pants, stretching his limbs out. âGonna feel this tomorrow.âÂ
âWell, you are another year older, old man,â you tease, curling up next to him.Â
âYeah,â he turns his head to look at you. âI guess I am,â he sighs. âThank you forâmy birthday andâall of this. I can never put into words how much it all means to me.âÂ
âSo I guess youâre still in love with me?â you tease.
âAlways. Especially on this harvest moon,â he returns your smile.Â
---
Tagging a couple people who had asked about this piece earlier this month: @almostfoxglove, @sawymredfox, @burntheedges, and @littlemisspascal đŠˇđ
#joel miller#joel miller x reader#joel miller smut#joel miller fic#joel miller x you#joel miller fanfiction#pedro pascal#joel miller fanfic#joel x reader#jackson joel#joel the last of us#joel miller tlou
2K notes
¡
View notes
Text
Jealous much?
Pairing: dofp!Logan x fem!teacher!Reader
Summary: What happens when Logan finds the father of one of your students flirting with you after class?
Wordcount: 1.7k
Warnings/tags: Jealous!Logan, established relationship (you are married), flirting, Logan asserting dominance to the guy that thinks he has a chance with you, smitten Logan bc he loves u so much, reader is implied to be 'turned on' once, no use of (y/n), english is not my first language!
_________________
I love love LOVE jealous Logan. Someone (I think it was by @pandapetals) made a fic where Logan and reader were married and a students mother was flirting with Logan, which pissed reader off and she has to show the lady who has that man wrapped around her finger already. That was so YUMMY so this is the Logan-being-jealous counterpart, hope you enjoy!
âââââââââââââââââââââ
The end of the school day brought with it a familiar sense of relief and exhaustion. You loved your job, but after spending hours with a classroom full of high-energy students, you were ready to pack up and head to your room in the mansion.
The thought of your shared room and of your husband Logan waiting there brought a small smile to your face. But as you were tidying up your desk, the last few students leaving your classroom, you heard a voice call your name. Your head wiped around as you heard it. âExcuse me, Miss!â At first, you thought it was one of your students, but their voice was too deep to be a teenage boy.
You turned to see Mr. Reed, a tall, polished man with a charming smile. You recognized him immediately. He was the father of one of your more rambunctious students, Jason Reed. He seemed to live in this school, it was weird just how often you saw him around. He attended every single one of the parent evenings you hosted - only yours. And he often sought you out to have a conversation with him and his son. You didn't think too much of it, it was your job after all to answer the parents questions if they had any concerns.
You gave him a friendly wave as he approached. âOh, hey, Mr. Reedâ you greeted warmly, pausing in your steps. "Is there something you needed?
The man gave a casual shrug, slipping his hands into the pockets of his well-tailored suitjacket. âI was hoping to catch you for a moment. My son just wonât stop talking about you. Miss "the-coolest-teacher-everââ he added with a chuckle, his blue eyes holding a distinct shimmer in them.
You laughed softly. Hearing this went down like honey. You were always happy to know that your students were enjoying your class. You were the teacher you wanted to be since you were a student yourself. The teacher that made other students feel safe, that didn't make them feel like they were pressured and had to deliver a certain level of performance to be good enough "Well, Jason is a great kid. Heâs got so much energy. I can barely keep up sometimes, but Iâm glad to hear he is liking my classes this far."
âOh, absolutely. Youâve really made a difference for himâ Mr. Reed said, his voice dipping into something smoother, something deeper. âHeâs had a hard time adjusting to his mutation, you know. And the abilities that come with it. But since heâs been in your class, I can tell heâs a lot happier. More confident" he praised you highly, teeth bared in a dashing smile to you. âAnd thatâs all thanks to you. I donât know how you do it, managing a class full of kids with various mutations and powers they can't quite control yet. Itâs impressive.â
You waved your hand dissmisvely at the single father, giggling bashfully. You weren't used to such direct praise from parents, not even from him. âI'm flattered, but itâs not just me" you replied modestly. âMr. Xavier has build a great support system over the years.â
Mr. Reed clicked his tounge at your humble answer. âDonât sell yourself shortâ he flashed you another grin. âYou clearly have a talent with kids. Jason has made more progress in the past few months than he ever has before. Iâm not sure how I could ever thank you properly.â
His tone was friendly for the time being. The conversation continued. And at first it felt completely professional, how it should be. Mr. Reed asked about Jasonâs curriculum, your teaching methods and even about the schools approach to managing the students unique abilities. You were more than happy to answer all his questions, oblivious to the way he started inching closer.
âItâs just refreshingâ he said, leaning casually against the wall next to you, his eyes subtly roaming your figure âto meet someone as smart, kind and beautiful as you. Jasonâs lucky to have you as his teacher. The whole class is.â
The realisation hit you like a ton of bricks. He wasnât just being nice. He was flirting. You blinked, your polite smile faltering. âOh, um, thank youâ you replied, starting to feel a little awkward. It showed with the way you brushed a strand of hair behind your ear. A sign for him that you were all shy and bashful around him. Far from that. You felt really uncomfortable.
"Iâm lucky, too, reallyâ he added, fueling the bad feeling in your gut. His eyes sweeped over you, this time less subtle, in a way that made your skin prickle, but not the good kind.
Then he decided to just go for it and ask the big question. He was impatient and wasn't in the mood to wait until you initiated something first. He had waited long enough. âDo you ever take time for yourself? Maybe let someone take you out for dinner?â
Your composure completely faltered for a second. The nerve this guy had. Didn't he see the obvious gold ring on your finger or did he purposefully decided to ignore it? You opened your mouth, trying to come up with a diplomatic way to shut this down, but you didnât get the chance to.
âEverything alright in here?â
Loganâs gruff voice cut through the hallway like a blade, low and unmistakably annoyed. You turned to see him striding toward you, eyeing Mr. Reed like a wild animal stalking its prey. His broad shoulders were squared, his jaw set, and his dark eyes locked onto the other man with visible irritation.
You jumped as if you had just been caught cheating. âLoganâ you squeaked surprised.
He huffed through his nose, his nostrils flaring like the ones of an angry bull that was riled up by the red in its vision. Well, when he had this loser of a man flirt with a goddess like you, his goddess, then he saw red. âSorry, didnât mean to interruptâ Logan nearly growled, his tone anything but apologetic as he stopped next to you.
Mr. Reed blinked, clearly caught off guard. He swallowed thickly âOh, I was just-â he tried to save the situation, or rather his own life, but Logan cut him off. âFlirtinâ with my wife?â Logan asked, arching a brow.
Mr. Reedâs face went pale as the snow falling outside the mansion, coating the gardenwith a thin layer of white. His eyes searched for your hand. They went wide as he looked at the wedding band you had been proudly wearing for six years now as if it had just appeared. âYou-wait, youâre married?â
âSure amâ Logan said, slipping an arm around your waist and pulling you firmly against his side, securing you there. Marking his territory. His grip was warm and possessive and you could feel the tension radiating from him.
Mr. Reed stammered, his eyes darting between you and Logan in embarrassement and if you looked correctly, a little bit of fear. âI-I had no idea. Iâm so sorry, I didnât mean-â he stuttered out, laughing awkwardly in a bad attempt to play down his nervousness.
âYeah, well, now you know,â Logan said flatly. âSo maybe next time, think twice before you try to fuck someones woman" he spat, taking a step closer to Mr. Reed. You gasped softly at Logans word and placed a hand on his chest, giving him a warning look. âLoganâ you muttered softly, trying to rein him in like a guard dog that was ready to pounce if its owner let him. You couldn't say that this side of him didn't turn you on immensly. But you didnât need to get scolded by Charles for scaring off a parent.
But Logan wasnât done. He leaned in slightly, his voice dropping to a dangerous rumble. âAnd just so weâre clear, sheâs not interested. Everâ He snarled, down right barked his last word into Reeds face, who then mumbled another apology before practically fleeing down the hallway, leaving you alone with Logan.
Once he was gone, you turned to your husband with a mix of exasperation and amusement. âand that was really necessary?" you chuckled with a proud smirk. âDamn right it wasâ Logan replied, his hand still possessively gripping your hips, smoothing over them. âGuy needed to know who he was dealinâ with.â
You sighed, but your lips twitched into a small smile as you leaned against your broad and strong teddy bear of a husband. âYou know I can handle myself, right?â
Logans lips pulled into the slightest smile as he looked down at you as if you were the most precious thing in the whole universe. âYeah, I knowâ Logan muttered, his tone softening as he admired your pretty face. That pretty face he had the privilege to wake up to every morning because you were his wife. His. âDoesnât mean Iâm gonna let some jackass hit on you though.â
You giggled, shaking your head fondly, reaching up to cup his gruff cheek. âYouâre ridiculous.â
Logan shrugged âMaybeâ he said, smirking. âBut you like ridiculous. Wouldnât have married me otherwise, missy" he rumbled deep in his chest, making you smile because it was the truth. You married him for it. Married him for everything he was. âGuilty as charged" you murmured with a smile, standing on your toes to kiss him softly.
Loganâs arms wrapped around you fully, pulling you closer as he deepened the kiss. By the time he pulled away, his loving smirk had returned, but his eyes were filled with something softer. Something only you got to see. Something that you wanted to see for the rest of your life just from him.
âStill donât like sharinâ,â he muttered. You laughed, resting your forehead against his. âYou donât have to.â
And as Logan laced his fingers with yours, leading you towards the mansions garden to take a relaxing stroll through the green and white landscape after this unpleasant encounter, you couldnât help but feel grateful for the man whoâd fight the world to keep you by his side.
âââââââââââââââââââ
And weirdly enough, you never saw Mr. Reed after that, not even at the parent evenings. I wonder why...
If you liked this- like, comments and reblog! It helps a lotđ
#logan howlett x reader#logan x reader#x men#hugh jackman#wolverine x reader#x reader#logan howlett#marvel#logan wolverine#days of future past#dofp! logan#xmen dofp#mcu#mcu fanfiction#Dofp Logan x reader
1K notes
¡
View notes
Text
Girl Dad || LS2
â summary: Loganâs longtime partner is a single parent and he absolutely loves being a girl dad
â pairing: logan sargeant x parent!reader
â fc & warnings: none and mentions of pregnancy
â requested: yes - changed it a little bit but hope you like! havenât written about kids and family before so i did my best! thank you so very much for taking the time to request đŤśđť
a/n: y/d/n = your daughters name
ďž. âż ŕ¨â¤ď¸ŕ§â âż . ďž
ynuser has made a post
liked by logansargeant, maxverstappen1, carmenmundt, georgerussell63, yourbff, williamsracing and 324,345 others
ynuser: family time with my favorite people! oh what i wouldnât give for summer break to last forever đ¤
view all 253 comments
lilymhe: summer break is fun and all but i miss you and y/d/n đŤ
ynuser: we miss you too lils
alex_albon: the break literally just started and you saw each other yesterday
lilymhe: wondering who it was that asked you?
user1: logie bear and his girls đĽš
user2: mother is mothering
user3: it can since ur man has no job
user4: i mean this with full disrespect- f u đđť
logansargeant: it could last forever if we moved to florida đ
ynuser: you know i love you logan but i will not be moving to florida
yourbff: little lady is getting so big omg i have to visit soon
ynuser: yes pls come visit!!
user5: looking forward to all the logan dad content this break
logansargeant has made a post
liked by ynuser, williamsracing, alex_albon, oscarpiastri, maxvertsappen1, lilymhe, and 678,436 others
logansargeant: boo ya baby
view all 654 comments
user18: frat boy and dad logan all in one post im going to combust
user19: i love how he posts y/d/n more than y/n , he do be loving the honorary dad life
ynuser: cowabunga!
logansargeant: â¤ď¸đââď¸
williamsracing: hope you are enjoying summer break logan!
oscarpiastri: with what skills are you teaching y/d/n to surf?
logansargeant: iâll have you know im quite good
ynuser: that is generous logan
user23: logan is so dilf coded this makes so much sense
user27: do we wanna take bets on how long it is till he proposes?
user44: gotta be before the end of the season. iâm thinking summer break is the perfect time
ynuser has made a post
liked by alex_albon, maxverstappen1, carmenmundt, logansargeant, williamsracing, and 345,657 others
ynuser: pictured: pretty princess logie bear treating his two girls right
view all 689 comments
user88: PRETTY PRINCESS LOGIE BEAR
user28: princess logan was not on my bingo card but i am so here for it
logansargeant: i love both of my pretty princesses so much
logansargeant: (i thought we agreed you wouldnât post these pictures of me and y/d/n)
ynuser: but theyâre just so cute đĽš
alex_albon: oh look at this big softie
ynuser: heâs the biggest softie
logansargeant: please i have an image to protect
alex_albon: no you donât
oscarpiastri: ok twinkle toes
ynuser: donât make me pull up the pictures of you at y/d/nâs tea party
oscarpiastri: uncle oscar will be quiet
landonorris: SIMP
logansargeant: guilty
user29: heâs not the step father,,, heâs the father who stepped up đŁď¸
user13: theyâre not even married
user29: YET user13 YET
user34: seeing logan with y/d/n is so healing. we stan a man who loves his kids (even if theyâre not his kids just his beautiful partners kids)
logansargeant has posted to his story
view all story replies
user43: donât mind me screaming my head off rn
user89: logan hunter sargeant the man that you are
landonorris: post anything other than y/n or y/d/n challenge failed
logansargeant: hey the second photo is just me!
ynuser: you have no business looking that good at the gym
logansargeant: sorry baby đ
lilymhe: no matter how cute the pic is, socks with sandals is criminal
logansargeant: thanks for the feedback lily đ
user42: i think these 2 pics might be the death of me
user46: thank you for feeding us papa sarge
ynuser has made a post
liked by yourbff, lilymhe, logansargeant, williamsracing, lilyzneimer, oscarpiastri, maxveratappen1 and 876,346 others
ynuser: y/d/n says she wants to drive loganâs f1 car one time and now heâs got her out here with her own kart. sheâs a fast one tho just like her favorite guy đ¤
view all 456 comments
user33: project sargeant is a go
user55: honestly y/d/n could drive the williams f1 car.. it may as well be a tractor at this point
logansargeant: had to make sure my girl could follow her dreams!
ynuser: she does want to be just like you đĽš
user76: i am going to lay in the road this is so
lilymhe: i miss little my race car driver!! also im obsessed with her pink helmet
ynuser: we canât wait to see you in a couple daysđŤśđť
maxverstappen1: love to see it! if she needs any pointers, iâd be happy to help đ
ynuser: you and p should come by! she misses you both (and the cats too)
maxverstappen1: when youâre in monaco next we will get together!
user56: this just in - y/d/n is arrow mclarens next driver!
user38: f1 academyâs newest star
logansargeant has made a post
liked by ynuser, alex_albon, williamsracing, oscarpiastri, yourbff, maxverstappen1, lilyzneimer, and 673,234 others
logansargeant: surprise! weâre getting married and weâre expecting! baby sargeant coming spring 2025. we love you so much already little one đ¤
view all 879 comments
user88: just fell to my knees in this walmart parking lot
user46: iâve never been more happy for two people in my whole life
ynuser: canât wait to be your wife and meet our little bundle of joy đŤśđť
logansargeant: i could not be more excited đ
lilymhe: SCREAMING CRYING THROWING UP
ynuser: same
alex_albon: my two favorite people are going to get married and have a baby wow
ynuser: đĽšďż˝ďż˝ďż˝ďż˝đĽš
user34: logan is already the best dad to y/d/n , ik heâs gonna be the best to this little one too đ
user76: RAHHHHH BABY AMERICA đşđ¸đŚ
đŚ
đşđ¸
oscarpiastri: congratulations you too. big love to you both đ§Ą
ynuser: we love you uncle oscar
logansargeant: thanks osc đ
lilyzneimer: YAYY!!!! beyond excited for you both. love love love love you đ§Ą
ynuser: love you more ms maid of honor đ¤
user75: if y/nlogan have no fans then i am dead
user27: sargenation won with this. our boy is so happy and thatâs all that matters
ďž. âż ŕ¨â¤ď¸ŕ§â âż . ďž
a/n: thank you for reading!! working my way through my requests so please be patient. likes and reblogs appreciated đŤśđť
ďž. âż ŕ¨â¤ď¸ŕ§â âż . ďž
disclaimer: pictures are not mine and everything i write is fiction
Š norrisainz33 || please do not rewrite, translate, or copy any of my works posted here on to any other platform
#f1 fandom#formula 1#f1 fanfic#f1 imagine#f1 smau#f1 social media au#f1 x reader#formula 1 fanfic#formula 1 imagine#formula 1 x reader#ls2 x you#ls2 fluff#ls2 fic#ls2 imagine#ls2 x y/n#ls2 x reader#ls2#logan sargeant x you#logan sargeant x reader#logan sargeant#logan sargeant smau#logan sargeant social media au#logan sargeant fic#logan sargeant imagine#logan sargeant x y/n
2K notes
¡
View notes
Text
bisous đ¤ carlos sainz đ leclerc!reader.
⨠summary. all he wanted was a kiss, itâs not his fault the paparazzi caught it, and itâs totally coincidental that your brotherâs going to kill him. âŠ
⨠faceclaim. @/claudiamariewalsh on instagram <3 âŠ
⨠notes. i had sm fun doing this! though it did exceed the limit i was looking at, becoming a bit long, but i do wanna do a part two to this because imo the charles x carlos beef is gonna be really funny!! i hope you enjoy xx âŠ
ââË.â instagram.
liked by charles_leclerc and 30,987 others.
yourinstagram. wined and dined xo
view all 11,345 comments.
username when god has favourites đŠ
username holy shit
charles_leclerc mon poupette! tellement jolie.
yourusername je tâaime cha xx
username my brother is a dick compared to charles lmao
arthur_leclerc bet you were smelly.
yourusername bet you came out of a gutter.
username now thatâs more like my brother
username not carlos creeping in the likes đ
username girl bffr heâs like 6 years older than her??
username so lol #zaddy
username donât ever say âzaddy againâ.
landonorris wined, dined and sixty-nined.
charles_leclerc get out.
yourusername ew you weirdo
landonorris so itâs funny when kevin in the office says it??
yourusername he has rizz, unlike you.
maxverstappen1 real.
landonorris i hate you.
francisca.cgomes so stunning my girl đť
yourusername love u forever keeks <33
username someone look at me like she does in the third pic đ
carlossainz55 esplĂŠndida
yourusername đ¤â¤ď¸
charles_leclerc ???
arthur_leclerc ???
landonorris ???
username lando what??
landonorris felt a bit left out there đ¤ˇââď¸
ââË.â twitter.
ââË.â instagram.
carlossainz55 added to their stories.
seen by yourusername and 800,567 others.
yourusername replied to this story.
⤡ mon coeur đŤśđź
⤡ je tâaime tellement !!
landonorris replied to this story.
⤡ did you wine her and dine her??
⤡ ;) ;)
charles_leclerc replied to this story.
⤡ i bought yn a ring so similar for her 21st!
⤡ what a small world eh mate?
ââË.â text messages between yn and charles.
ââË.â text messages between yn and carlos.
ââË.â instagram.
liked by carlossainz55 and 47,222 others.
yourinstagram sunny days âď¸
view all 24,432 comments.
username SOFT LAUNCH I REPEAT SOFT LAUNCH !!
username carlos crying in the likes lol
username someone check on big bro charlie đ
charles_leclerc poupette???
charles_leclerc que se passe-t-il?? ( whatâs going on? )
charles_leclerc you didnât say BOYS were gonna be on this trip!!
yourusername is my hair not pretty?
yourusername you havenât complimented it yet?
yourusername itâs healthier and you havenât noticed :((
francisca.cgomes you should be ashamed charles_leclerc
pierregasly absolutely sick of you charles !!
landonorris even i noticed her stunning hair! itâs smoother!
maxverstappen1 disgusting behaviour
charles_leclerc ??? no ??
yourusername oh?? itâs not healthier? iâm not pretty anymore?
francisc.cgomes HOW DARE YOU charles_leclerc
charles_leclerc NON poupette desolee
yourusername donât talk to me.
username me when i dream
gigihadid đťđť
arthur_leclerc stunning hair btw
yourusername love u tur
username heâs being nice??
arthur_leclerc too bad it doesnât help the ugly face lol
username nvm
charles_leclerc pick up the phone poupette
charles_leclerc youâre very pretty !! youâre hair is so shiny !!
charles_leclerc weâll go shopping soon poupette đ
yourusername okay charlie love u đĽ°
arthur_leclerc i want a new ps5
charles_leclerc get it yourself.
carlossainz55 hermosa
username poor boy
username mans desperate fr
username not when sheâs soft launching mate đđ
ââË.â instagram
carlossainz55 added to their stories.
seen by charles_leclerc and 1,678,432 others.
yourusername replied to this story.
⤡ photographer of the year !
⤡ very much thought you were gonna use the pic of me falling.
⤡ love u
charles_leclerc replied to this story.
⤡ girlsâ hair get better every day.
⤡ looks oddly similar too tbh
⤡ whereâd you say you were vacationing again mate?
charles_leclerc can no longer view your stories
landonorris replied to this story.
⤡ shiny hair đ
ââË.â twitter.
ââË.â text messages between yn and kika.
ââË.â twitter.
ââË.â texts between yn and charles, and charles and carlos.
ââË.â instagram
yourusername added to their stories.
seen by carlossainz55 and 986,444 others.
charles_leclerc replied to your story.
⤡ poupette youâve never done anything wrong in your life.
⤡ iâm not mad, call me please
⤡ desolee bebe
⤡ i have that new chanel you wanted â¤ď¸
landonorris replied to your story.
⤡ so unserious lmao
pierregasly replied to your story.
⤡ charles is going to buy the entire mall y/n !!
⤡ tell him youâre not mad at him
⤡ DONT LISTEN TO KIKA
francisca.cgomes replied to your story.
⤡ tell pierre to piss off
⤡ let charles buy you what he wants.
⤡ omg tell him you want a ferrari !!
⤡ IN PINK !!
carlossainz55 replied to your story.
⤡ mi vida your brothers texting me again
⤡ itâs very weird heâs apologising now??
⤡ heâs asking me if you want a pink ferrari??
⤡ bebita you should have told me you want a pink ferrari??
⤡ with a matching bag okay my love đŠˇ
arthur_leclerc replied to your story.
⤡ TELL CHARLES YOU WANT A PS5
⤡ LO TOLD ME TO FUCK OFF
⤡ STOP TELLING ON ME Y/N
lorenzotl replied to your story.
⤡ iâm very happy for you mon chou â¤ď¸
⤡ ignore arthur he doesnât need a new ps5
⤡ he makes his own money.
ââË.â instagram.
carlossainz55 added to their stories.
seen by charles_leclerc and 1,410,333 others.
charles leclerc replied to your story.
⤡ who do you think you are buying MY sister a pink ferrari
⤡ you be with her, okay. you date her, okay. but buying her things?
⤡ and a matching bag???
⤡ you piece of shit.
⤡ when i said we were brothers i didnât mean this!
yourusername replied to your story.
⤡ ma vie đ
⤡ je tâaime tellement <3
arthur_leclerc replied to your story.
⤡ y/n wants a ps5!!
⤡ brother đđ
francisca.cgomes replied to your story.
⤡ you picked up the correct bag for her!!
⤡ she also likes chanel and hermès !!
⤡ youâll be outdoing charles in no time !!
ââË.â twitter.
ââË.â
⨠disclaimer. i do not own any of the images above, all were found on pinterest, this is purely for fun and nothing is based on real life âŠ
#๨ৠmy works#â§. carlos sainz#carlos sainz x reader#carlos sainz x y/n#carlos sainz x fem!reader#carlos sainz x you#carlos sainz imagine#carlos sainz fic#carlos sainz smau#carlos sainz fluff#carlos sainz one shot#f1 x reader#f1 x you#charles leclerc x reader
3K notes
¡
View notes
Text
STARCROSSED PT2 +ŕŠâŠâ§âË LOGAN HOWLETT.
logan and y/n â where you are completely in love with a man older then youâre father by a good century or so.. whose completely in love with another.
- content warning age gap (is legal) drinking. explicit. swearing. dirty humour. comfort (an ounce). drugs. nsfw. sick. body issues. sh. angst.. maybe happy endings?! pairings: older!logan howlett x xaiver!reader. logan howlett x jean grey.
spoiler: insane yearning and angst iâm sorry im too far gone âšď¸ happy ? where.
note this is part two to starcrossed, prepare for even heavier angst!đŤśđť i didnât realise how sad this was until i finished the chapter and realised holy shit this is long. part three is already in the works. i hope u enjoy it! make sure to read pt1. itâs a bit diff from the first one but i hope u like it still. also if youâve seen the movie ten things i hate about u the mid bit of this might remind u of that one scene if u get me :) song: need you now by lady a cos i was listening to it and jeff buckley whilst reading this? also on the timeline im going for like xmen 2 time i think?
tags â @faceache111 @malfoys-demigod @navs-bhat @dilfismz @thisbipuff-isaswiftie @twinky-wink @thewiselionessss @thecraziestcrayon @awhoreforalotofshows @emily-b @jae48 @cxptainbuck @444st4rg1rl đŤśđť
[i hope you like it!!]
youâd absolutely love to believe that what you heard last night wasnât what happened but as your mind goes over the previous night as you fought yourself to stay awake during your fathers little class your brain couldnât forget the continuous moans and little yells that you heard from a few rooms across from your own at the mansion for a good hour or two last night. you canât help but figure out that logan most certainly found jean and just thinking about it made you feel sick. scott being the main thing on your brain after you got over the fact logan most definitely fucked jean last night.
she was a cheater. what else could you expect? your thoughts swirling in your brain causing an indescribable amount of heart ache as you kept yourself completely quiet and withdrawn from whatever was going on in this lesson, rogue clearly being able to tell you were off as she glanced at bobby giving him a look you picked up on â him shrugging his shoulders in return as you cursed your sadness for being so obvious.
just the thought of jean and logan staring at eachother hurt you but her touching him, his hands over her skin, her lips on his, his mind only on her in that moment and his gaze locked into hers as she let him take her yet again enraged you to another level it was a struggle not to jump into his mind and find out exactly what happened but you couldnât, you wouldnât. your brain fighting with your heart in every way as you felt sick with all those pictures of the scenario you were forming for yourself.
so from that knowledge as you sat in class you knew you needed to stop liking him for good. he didnât like you, he was throwing it in your face. you heard it all and it hurt you too much to bare. you didnât even wanna look at him â that single thought of contact sending you crazy. you couldnât even bring yourself to see him today. you didnât want too, you couldnât. seeing jean as you passed through the kitchen earlier was enough to make you nearly cry and immediately stop that tiny breakfast you had made.
you really couldnât deal with this. one bit. you never did well with emotional pain â physical was something you could endure, yet emotional was always something you couldnât stomach ever since you were a little girl.
+ŕŠâŠâ§âË
you'd been avoiding him like the plague. literally. whenever you saw him at the end of the halls you'd turn the other away, force a little smile and act like you had somewhere to go if you were in conversation and it had been like that for two weeks. two weeks had passed since one of your normal conversations, the friendly chats you admired in your brain and made out to be more, the little touches he'd give you that you couldn't comprehend was only a friend thing to do, the way he'd hug you.. the deep conversations, the way he'd sometimes kiss your forehead before you left for bed, watching the rain together and just joking together all something you had put in the past. that had been gone for two weeks and to say it was breaking you would be an understatement.
you could tell others has noticed the practical borderline dissociation within you since you had been a little mute recently not that it was specially due to logan (it completely all was) but you didn't want it to be obvious, you hated that it could be perceived that way so you knew you had to do something about it. who knew heartache for one that didn't love you back could destroy you this badly from the inside out?
.. and today was no different on the logan front. you saw him once today in the halls ushering something to hank â the two in bustling conversation and you made sure not to risk it by going to class, to upset over it all to deal with another short horrible conversation where you were nothing but cold to him as you tried to cut down any romantic feelings you had for him. every time you spoke now you could see the confusion and frustration in his eyes, the mental image to much to bare as you went on hiding in your room and pondering and thatâs where you had been since â buried in clothing choices as you tried to stomach down the anxiety that had been growing in you over the fact it was jeans birthday party today and you would have to make an appearance after you had been a hermit since youâd got your heart broken by a guy that didnât even know. rogue and bobby being the only two people you had really spoke too since the shut down yet their concern had been growing annoying as rogue clearly told bobby about the little crush she couldâve guessed, and got out of you when the two of you were high together a few months ago, you had on logan. bobby actually giving you little options of guys you could date to get over someone which was all you needed to hear when you realised rogue had told him as he literally mentioned hank who they knew you recently hiked with since he had been bothering you over your melancholy, yet you had left before it was a full fledge little argument.
just the thought of having to socialise with him and the others and step out of the hole youâd built for yourself to hide in irritated you especially for jean of all peopleâs party, your âsmidgeâ of hatred for the woman who had really been rude to you since sheâd known you not because of logan, because god on that front she wins and it feels like sheâs married to him despite her ties to scott, but on the power front. she knew you had powers incomparable to hers that you hardly even showcased magneto being someone who taught you many things when you were younger, your own parents being raven and charles. of course you had powers which were indescribable.
and most of the time you wanted to use it on that bitch. you were lucky she couldnât get into your twisted mind to find that fact out.
you let out a little sigh as you decided on the black mini skirt and sweater â you finally having an excuse for the fall outfit and lack of dress because it was october which has always been your favourite season and best time of year yet this year that didnât apply because you havenât been hardly able to enjoy it because of isolation youâd forced yourself into.
y/n had to swallow her own self pity down as she leaned over to her perfume bottle on the drawer next to her mirror as she took in the image of her body in the skirt. her shrinking body, a scoff leaving her lips as she wasnât happy with what she saw in the reflection. she never could be. the aroma of the perfume not masking her feelings at all as she put on some dc martens paired with black tights. the perfect little outfit yet she was sure jean would be outshining her on that front. god she didnât even wanna imagine loganâs eyes being locked onto jean tonight, the heart ache already unbearable to comprehend as she swallowed a lump that formed in her throat. that aching feeling hadnât gone away since the start of knowing logan the way she did, maybe that was a sign from the people above about how destined it was.. or how not it was.
these muddled thoughts led her too some early drinking as if she wouldnât be getting shitfaced later. pregaming alone which is a bit self pity full as she swallowed the burning liquor down her throat, the whiskey hitting her softly and slowly enough to give her the confidence to leave her room twenty minutes later for this party.
+ŕŠâŠâ§âË
the decorations were perfect, the present corner was overflowing and the students and people were everywhere. jean being clearly the popular girl from the looks of this party, as if y/n already didnât know that, as the blasting music just made her more aware of the scenario she was in as she fought the urge to look around the room for logan as she went straight over to the bar that had been made. the party was the perfect one a girl, woman, could ask for and y/n could feel the jealously bubbling already that she bit down as she forced a friendly smile to join her lips.
walking through the dancing groups of people, there hardly even being any spaces to walk unless you wanted to bump into a coked up or insanely drunk teenager or wade. who she was lucky to get past without having to talk to yet, no matter how much she did like and enjoy his company she couldnât deal with his jokes right now which she could guess whoâd theyâd be centered around, she knew he knew to some extent she was just lucky he hadnât out rightly said it. that would be too much pity for her to deal with, that coming from wade being another level of pathetic.
the second she leant against the bar she managed to grab the busy barmaids attention giving her a soft nod and polite smile as she didnât notice the figure beside her as she asked for a coke and vodka.
âthank god youâre showing your face â i thought i was going to have to clone you to get a good conversation.â hank rolled out his tipsiness showing as he pulled y/n into a tight hug when he was sat down on the stool. y/n letting out a low chuckle as she hugged him back nicely, his presence being a little surprise she tried not to seem so bothered about.
âhiya hank.â y/n said softly as the barmaid came over with her drink, placing it next to her. âthanks.â y/n nodded out as hank placed his hand on the stool next to him as she immediately grabbed it and took a swig.
âcome! sit.â he ushered in with a drunken smile on his face, a bright one as usual, as he patted the bar stool next to him inviting her to sit and before y/n could even speak up in reply as she slid down on the stool hank bit in.
âwhere the hell have you been?â he abruptly said bluntly, putting a little look on his face off one thatâs pissed off as y/n felt the guilt rush through her as she wrapped her fingers around the glass drowning her truth in the drink as she took a big sip off the liquor acting as if that didnât taste appalling as she shrugged her shoulders at hanks obvious question which has an obvious answer to that sheâd play off as a stupid claim if questioned about it.
ââiâve been busy! controlling powersâ small missions, and that.â y/n lied out.
hank furrowed his eyebrows at his words, giving her a knowing look before he shook his head swiftly at what she said. seeing right through her little lie he truly knew nothing much about what the truth was or not as he took a little sip of his beer.
âi know you but iâm not pushing itâ rather you bite of loganâs heads rather then mine.â hank said out lowly as y/nâs eyebrows furrowed at his comment as a look of confusion spread over her face at the mention of him but before she could question hank on it she was met with two hands around her waist, pulling her tightly back purposely.
âhello pretty little liars, youâre aria?â wade said loudly into her ear his drunkenness obvious as y/n scoffed, him clearly stating that because her outfit choice as he squeezed her even tighter y/nâs eyes rolling as she elbowed him playfully back as his hands on her faltered as he playfully shoved her back.
ââelsa! you made it snow yet?â y/n said back to him as she was met with the sound of his laughter as he pulled on the stool next to y/n, making the guy who was sat on it mutter a curse before wade sent him a glare and then went speed walking away clearly a boy as young as fourteen or thirteen who just got the shit scared out him for, wadeâs harsh look as he sqt down on the stool as he met y/nâs gaze.
âyou know i have honey.â he nodded out with a smirk as hank leaned into the twos space.
âshots anyone?â hank rolled out, fixing his glasses as wade enthusiastically said a quick yes, y/n adding to the fire. ââvery much needed.â y/n drove out as wade sent her a little look of knowing yet he held back the urge to call her out on it. he was being a âgoodâ friend in his eyes anyway, he didnât wanna hear her say things about logan when he knew a few things himself on how the other party felt.
hank calling the barmaid over as wade pulled y/nâs stool closer to his that knowing look still present on his face as he played with the knowledge he had a bit just in a little playful way.
âyou seen the birthday girl yet?..gave her a gift?â wade said sarcastically knowing the two didnât really see eye to eye on a LOT of things as y/n gave him a little glare, him having been present for many of their little disagreements.
âluckily i havenât, as iâve brung nothing.â y/n rumbled back as wade nudged her playfully with her words as hank grabbed the tray of shots from the barmaidâ y/nâs eyes widening once she saw how many shots he had ordered. âfifteen?â y/n broke out with a raised eyebrow as hank chuckled as he took one, downing it straight away before grabbing another as wade spoke up cockily.
âwhoâs pants are you trying to get into?â wade rolled out, his voice sly as he grabbed two for himself as y/n leaned over and took one ready to get shitfaced, maybe thatâd stop her mind from falling back onto logan every other second her longing heart internally hating this situation more and more as she yearned to see him but she bit back the urge to even look around for him. halting that urge by taking a shot.
âpreferably anyone with a pulse and no dick between their legs.â hank said right as y/n took another shot, her nearly choking on the burning liquid which was a horrible mix of vodka and god knows what.
âi can tuck.â wade said lowly as this made it worse, y/n nudging wade, shaking her head as she held back her laugh as she swallowed the shot she just took. âdisgusting!â she rolled out as she took another, downing it before placing the shot down on the table.
âah! sweeties jealous.â wade spoke up sarcastically with that all familiar cocky smile on his face with that teasing glint in his eyes as he handed another shot y/nâs way as she took it gracefully as they all cheersed their glasses together. that being just one of the about eight times they did that within the next thirty to sixty minutes as y/n bit back her thoughts with copious amounts of shots and soon enough they had gone through a good four or so tray off shots and a few drinks each.
every passing minute y/n felt her mind get closer and closer to the edge as every time she felt that aching feeling grow sheâd swallow it back with another sip of liquor or large shot â wades jokes passing the time and hanks yapping and her own occasional drunken chime in making her mind a mess as hank got another row of shots.
the songs and wade and hankâs voices becoming a blur in y/nâs mind as she swallowed nothing but the truth with those shots. every sip feeling like more heartache she couldnât stop having.
+ŕŠâŠâ§âË
y/n was practically stuck too the bar stool, her eyes scanning the crowd occasionally (by occasionally around five times if not more a minute) as she looked for him. her mind lingering on a certain someone as it always tended to do the liquor just amplifying those feelings as hank spoke up.
âyou knowâ you look like your mum.â
his words caused y/nâs attention to snap over to hank as she raised an eyebrow, wade making a little âooâ in the background even if he couldnât help but agree with his comment as he sipped on the cocktail he had ordered a few drinks previously that had just been laying there on the side. the bartender making a fuck ton of profit from these three miserables.
âvery dead?â y/n said sarcastically as hank gave her a little look â clearly a little annoyed she didnât take the comment seriously as he leaned a little closer to her.
âbeautiful you idiot.â hank added out, his words making her eyebrows furrow a bit as she took in his drunken words as she gave him a little a smile â swallowing the depreciating joke she was close to making as she took a sip of her drink.
âthank you hank.â y/n nodded out calmly as wade butted in.
ââfucking hell, incoming for angry jacob twilight wannabe.â wade cursed out as y/nâs gaze moved over wade following his eyes to where he was looking, her heart feeling as if it was flipping and twisting in her chest as she watched logan walk into the bar games room as she furrowed her eyebrows at the sight of jean following him angrily. her looking perfect as ever.
yet before y/n could think another thought she locked eyes with logan from across the room â their eyes meeting as she felt a weight lift immediately onto her as she swallowed a lump that formed in her throat at just the sight of him. it felt as if time has frozen just as they looked to each other , his eyes taking everything about her in as she did the same his way.
he practically immediately walked over, more like stomped over, as he seemed clearly agitated. more then usual as his eyes dawned onto wade and hank before resting back to y/n as he stopped in his tracks in front of the seated three.
âwho thought getting a teenager shitfaced was a good idea?â logan nearly growled out, giving wade a glare as y/nâs eyes lingered back on jean who saw who he was talking to and turned away her being even more pissed then him, y/n holding the urge to go into her mind and find out why as she brung her gaze onto logan after seeing jean walk off somewhere else in the room, her patience clearly wearing thin. her wanting to make a little childish comment about how she wasnât when wade spoke up.
âgods probably.â wade rolled out in reply as logan scoffed at what he said.
ây/n.â logan said, her eyes meeting his own as she took in his appearance. her eyes lingering on the chain that was wrapped around his neck â one he told her was something jean gave him when he first became an xmen, something he hasnât worn in months, this fact only making her feel a number of horrible thoughts as she grabbed her drink and took a mean swig. swallowing her own building self pity as she forced a fake smile logan immediately knew to be fake.
âhi.â she said swiftly after she put her drink back down on the table â his eyebrow raising a little at her hostility as he looked to wade, hank the back to her.
âuhââ logan spoke up, trying to find the words to say as he looked at her a bit lost for words at how she was acting as he swallowed a lump that had formed in his throat â feeling his frustration rise as he tried to control it, âwhere have you been?â he said lowly, hank raising his eyebrow at how this little conversation seemed weirdly tension filled. wade knew why, he couldâve called her little feelings for him back when she first met the guy but now he couldnât help see how serious it was because off the way she was looking at him and how it was affecting her.
he couldnât even brung himself to but in as he buried himself in his drink. hank doing the same.
âiâve been busy. but iâve been aroundâ i saw you two days ago.â she said quickly, shifting in her seat a little as his eyes almost felt as if they burnt through her.
âyou didnât stay,â he said taking a pause as he looked at her, taking in just how intoxicated she seemed as he tried to analyse it, âlike you uh- normally, do.â
his words touched a nerve on y/n as she felt that all familiar heart ache grow y/n trying to act as if the feeling inside her wasnât killing her right now and ripping her to shreds as she kept her gaze on him, his eyes on her making her think and feel a number of things she hated.
ââhad somewhere to be.â she replied quickly, his eyebrows raising at her bluntness to her reply as he knew something was off. he sensed it, the drunkness only adding to his worry as he went to step closer when he was cut off by a voice behind him.
y/n eyes dawned on the sight off jean, a tight silver dress on showcasing her curves as her red hair flowed down by her side as she looked at logan who hadnât even brung himself to met her gaze yet. y/n immediately being hit with a truck load of insecurities just with a glance to the older women who had the only guy sheâd ever loved wrapped around her finger.
y/nâs heart feeling as if it was stepped on as she kept her gaze on him â time feeling a little slow motion.
âloganânow.â jean said harshly.
âlo- logan.â she said again, y/n not leaving loganâs gaze as he swallowed his own spit as he eventually brung his gaze over to jean.
âloganâ he knows.â she said harshly, her words a little quiet as they were clearly just meant for loganâs ears yet y/n heard them. ânow! come on?â she questioned out frustratedly, saying that to grip his attention as logan looked to jean then back to y/n, wade and hank watching like it was a drama.
the air felt thick with some sort of something as y/n swallows, her eyes on him as he bit down on the inside of his cheek.
âbe careful kid, remember to slow down.â he rolled out before he turned away with jean going right to her side as y/n scoffed as he walked off turning her attention back to the barmaid â not feeling loganâs eyes burning back to her as he took a long glance her way before disappearing off with jean into the party to sort whatever was happening.
y/n rolled her eyes the second she turned her attention back over to the bar as she looked down at the bar table, swallowing her thoughts down with the rest of her vodka as she felt the others eyes on her. they sensed on the tension â it was impossible not too.
âso theyâre fucking again.â hank commented lowly and cluelessly. his words being like a gut punch to y/n as she bit down on her tongue as she called back over the barmaid, leaning over and ordering a couple shots as she sat back down in her seat.
âmm, most definitely.. hell for scott.â wade ushered out lowly, feeling a sense of guilt as he saw the way y/nâs eyes fell as y/n tried to mute out their conversation in the background as she welcomed the shots with open arms as she pulled the tray closer to her as she heard wade and hank whisper behind her as they leant over to gossip about the rumours of jean and scott being over as y/nâs heart felt as if it was plummeting and beating as fast as it ever had with every shot she took. the information she was hearing just making her internal pain grow worse as she tried to drink it away every shot seemingly enhancing her hurt as the metal images she were getting hurt her brain as she felt the urge to do something about it.
her mind full of relentless unlimited thoughts that were screaming at her as she placed the last empty shot glass she had down â the shots helping limit the voices to some extent as the barmaid came over and refilled them without another word most likely sensing her anguish as y/n nodded to her with as much of a smile she could muster up as she thought back to the conversation with logan.
âweâre going to danceâ you coming?â wade spoke to y/n as that brung her out her gaze with the bottom of the shot glass as she shook her head, ânoâthanks,â she slurred out as hank gave her a small nod and pat on the shoulder before they disappeared of into the crowd leaving her alone after saying their be right backsâ her lips immediately around another glass as she finished the rest of the drinks thay were laid out in front-of her.
y/n either needed fresh air and a sick bucket or the man she loved and craved, and she was going with the latter. her desires only heightened which was making just about everything worse due to the mess the alcohol had started to cause her brain and body.
her heart pounding as she stood up, everything going messy and spin like as she stumbled through the crowd. her mind on one thing and one thing only, one person, as she got pushed around a bit by the dancing people as she made her way out the bar room she was in. her eyes searching the place as she looked for him in every corner, in every face, every person, every laugh, every grunt and every noise. she was searching for him like she had been doing within her heart ever since sheâd know the man.
yet what she didnât expect to see when she turned the corner was him right there. logan right there in his bubble of perfection as she saw it. her eyes taking him in as she saw him in the hallway â a smile joining her lips as she started to walk over to him planning what she was going to say in her brain. how she was going to do any of this? she didnât even know what she had planned, she just wanted to speak to him. she needed to see his smile. she missed it. she wanted to make him laugh like usual, she wanted to kiss him, feel his touch. she needed it, it was destroying her to not have him. why was she ignoring him for the past two weeks? she should just tell him. nothing bad could hapâ
âmine.â she swore she could make out logan saying, her eyebrows furrowing in pure confusion as she took one little step closer to where he was as her eyes dawned on a certain red head with a killer smirk on her lips as she had a tight grip on his chain.
and with that every thought she just had was crushed within the space of five or so seconds as she heard jeanâs light hearted chuckle next, her voice grating against y/nâs mind as she swallowed her own spit back down as she made sure she couldnât be seen by them. feeling the sick feeling rising in her as she watched loganâs hands wrap around jeanâs waist as she pulled him closer to her in a teasing action that broke y/nâs heart in two.
she was frozen in her tracks, watching as the one she loved was with the one he loved.
âyouâre mine.â ringing in her ears as she just made out what he had said to jean as his words sent a chill through y/nâs body as she felt the tears start to boil in her eyes as she couldnât tear her eyes away from the scene. her mouth fallen gap as she watched as he roughly had her against the door jeanâs hand going down to the handle of said door as y/n watched as jean pulled him in the room with her roughly.
the door slamming behind them as she felt her beating out her chest, her breath shaky and hitched as she swallowed.
and when she heard a little squeal come from the room over the music a few seconds or minutes later, she couldnât tell how long had passed, thatâs when she knew she needed to go before she turned into a public laughing stock as she turned on her heel â shakily making her way through the crowd again, unbeknownst to the tears dropping down her cheeks as she fought her way through the dancing crowd as she tried to get the hell out of here as she thought she was fighting back her emotions, yet she really wasnât doing too good of a job with it.
âwatch it!â someone yelled out over the music to y/n as she shuffled past them quickly, stumbling out and disappearing through the back door as she made her break for it. her heart feeling broken to an extreme it hadnât felt before which was only amplified by the alcohol as she felt her brain chemistry formed for logan be destroyed within a matter of moments. seeing it in front of her own eyes being completely different from assuming it had happened.
the fact they were doing that right now she just couldnât and didnât want too comprehend it. it hurting her so much she felt as if she was going to be sick, she could feel it to the extremist point that when she managed her way to the end of the courtyard where her little spot was with her childhood swing set, where sheâs surprised she even remembered the whereabouts off in this state, she couldnât stop herself from leaning down into a bush shakily.
her mouth watering, her throat burning with liquid as y/n threw up into the bush her heart pounding ridiculously as she felt the tears burning against her cheek as she didnât even notice the feeling off two strong hands holding her hair back. her body shaking as she kept being sick, feeling the acid burn her throat as she felt a strong hand round her hair pulling it into a ponytail and another hand around her fragile body to keep her up.
her body flinching a little at the touch as the person leaned a little closer as y/n was sick some more, âitâs okayââ a low voice ushered out as y/n couldnât help be sick again, leaning down closer into the bush nearly tripping into it as the person held her upright. their hand snacking onto her waist as y/n leaned back into their touch. basically tripping into it as she let out a shaky breath as she wiped her mouth with the sleeve of her top.
her eyes moving up onto an all familiar face and she instantly cursed in her brain as he managed to move her over to the swings, sitting her down in one of two seats as she clung to the chain of it leaning her body against it freely as she let out a little cry.
âyouâre good.â scott said softly his voice low as he spoke into a comforting tone that didnât completely soothe her as she felt the tears trail down her cheek as he kneeled down â his hands stabilising the swing that was rocking a little as he looked up at her making sure she was okay on the swing. the cold air hitting the twos faces as the moon shone down on the courtyard, the faint sound of pop music from the mansion being completely distant to both of them.
âscott.â she managed to say, him being able to tell how far gone she was by the way she slurred her words as if her crying and throwing up didnât prove that enough. his eyes on her as he moved her hair out the way for her, tucking a strand of her hair behind her ear as she held back a little sob which wasnât held back that well as she let out a shaky whimper.
âw-whyâ doesn-t he love me?â she spoke out quickly, her breath shaky and her voice high pitched as she let out little sniffles in between words, the weight of those making a sad smile tug on scottâs lips as he kept his hand on her face trying to keep her upright which was sort of impossible as he kept his comforting warm hand against her face. just trying to make her feel okay.
ââheââ scott cut himself off before he moved closer to her, trying to keep her calm, âhe does love you okay?â
y/n shook her head at scottâs words as she let out a muffled sob against her wrist, shaking her head as scott wiped the tears from her cheeks. ânot like i want him to.â she rolled out in a slur, scott feeling his heart beat quicken at her little admission as if he didnât know how she felt over him before as he moved his finger across her cheek in a soft circular motion, his hand cupping her jaw.
âhey- he does okay?â scott said quickly as he moved her jaw down so she met his eyes again, his tone soft as he moved himself to the other swing next to her â the second he was sat him moving his swing closer to her own. tangling the chains of his swing up a little in doing so.
âhe does.â scott added out again, y/n not believing him at all as she swallowed a lump that had formed in her throat as she leaned herself again the hand that was cupping her face as she nearly tumbled off the swing.
her biting down on her tongue as she let out a little squeal as scott placed his hand on her back supporting and holding her up as a little chuckle left her lips as she leaned forward a little. scott not letting his hand move as worry was evident on his face as y/n turned to him a sad smile on her lips, tears still evident on her face.
âi wish.â he heard her whisper as he swallowed, his own voice breaking a little, âcome on. okay? he doesnât know what heâs missing right now.â he doesnt see you liking him.â scott said softly, giving her a little playful nudge as y/n started to lose the energy to even speak off it as she felt another tear slip down her cheek.
his words were taking the weight off her shoulders as she moved in the swing a little, scottâs comforting hand on her back which was now sort off around her waist making her sure she wasnât going to fall as she moved a tiny bit closer to him on her swing. their swings touching a little.
âyou deserve better then jean-y bitch.â she managed out lowly, scott not being able to help the chuckle that escaped his lips at how she put it as he looked out at the mansion in front of them. the moon present in his red tinted glasses.
âyeahâ iâm starting to realise that.â he chuckled out as y/n gave him a drunken smile in return as she locked eyes with scott. someone sheâd hardly noticed was this nice mostly due to the words logan remarked about him all the time as her smile couldnât help but grow as she looked at him. the air softening between the two as y/n felt tiredness fall over her as she leant against the chains a little as she slowly moved her gaze over to the moon.
a few moments of silence passes before scott spoke up.
ây/n?â scott managed out trying to grab her attention as he saw he eyes wondering a bit. his eyebrows furrowing when he heard no answer in return, her silence scaring him as he nudged her.
ây/n?â he quickly said out once again, nudging her a little as he saw how limp her body was and noticed her closed eyes.
âfuckâ y/n.â he ushered out quickly as he stood from his seat and went right to her side as he kneeled down, tapping her face to try and catch her attention. y/n stirring a little at his action as he stood up, pulling her up with him as he placed his hand around her waist as he tried to shake her a little which did the job as her eyes fluttered open to meet his own.
a drunken smile joining on her lips as a tear dropped down her cheek that she didnât even notice as she chuckled a little, leaning close to him as she swayed a little.
âscott.â she said lowly as scott gave her a low chucke as she placed her arm around him drunk on, him wiping the tear of her cheek softly something heâd done a number of times since being in her presence tonight.
âokay itâs time to go sleepâ im taking you to bed.â he explained softly as y/n looked at him with a little furrowed brow as he started to walk, helping her walk alongside him her hardly even able to realise she was walking as she leaned against his touch.
âyouâre good.â he said calmly to her as they walked through the dark courtyard, the illuminated by the moon field of grass between them and the bustling school /xmansion being the only light to guide them. his grip on her tightening softly when she nearly tripped over her own feet, a low chuckle escaping his lips as he realised just how long of a walk it was to the mansion. him sighing as he held her upright. ânearly there.â he muffled out as y/n leaned to him.
âââm gonna be sick.â she quickly flushed out before throwing her head over in the other direction as scott patted her back and stopped in his tracks at her words as she was sick again â him holding the urge got to be sick too because the smell as he focused on helping her. his heart skipping a beat bit as he felt his anger growing over logan putting her in this situation where she was so drunk she was being sick or the fact that she was being sick just thinking about logan it made his blood boil as he felt his jaw clench â his eyebrows twitching as he helped her get it all out, whispering little comforts as he soothed her back.
âgood girl. â he said lowly as y/n brung her gaze into him once more him giving her a small sad smile as he placed his hand back around her waist to guide her, âcmon, bed.â he whispered out to her as they started walking again. having to go through the party definitely going to be a difficult task as scott tightened his grip around her waist as they walked past a couple people hanging around the outside area of the building as the music met y/nâs ears as once they got into the building scott called for people to move out the way as he made y/n stay close to him. her eyes wondering over everyone in her drunken haze as scott helped her over to the staircase which was through a couple wide, filled rooms.
her swearing she came across wade and hank in the corner with two twins and colossusâs doing a certain something to wade, her eyebrows furrowing at what she believed to have just seen as she shook it off as she met scottâs words.
âyou need to be carried or are you okay?â scott asked as if he was babying her which sent a wave of comfort through her body as she let the question hang in her brain as she tried to form answer to it as she leaned herself against scott.
ââuââi canââ
âscarlett?â logan roughly called out in a raised voice towards scott as he came over out of nowhere. scott rolling his eyes as he quickly picked y/n up, y/n being in scottâs arms as her eyes fluttered open to see logan to the side of them. scottâs jaw immediately clenching as he continued up the stairs without cracking a word to logan as he rushed after the pair. his own anger frustratingly high as he tried to control himself and stop himself from doing anything stupid.
âscott?â logan said harshly, his anger growing as he didnât get an answer as he tried to get the man to look at him.
âlo-â y/n slipped out, her voice muffled as she leaned into scottâs arms more as he carried her bridal style up the stairs. her realising his presence, loganâs eyes casting onto y/n and then back to scott. his eyes darkening.
âwhat have you done to her?!â logan rushed out, his voice cracking with worry as scott ignored his words as he made it to the top of the stairs and continued on down to where heâs pretty sure her room is.
âscott!â logan shouted again trying to get his attention as scott opened the door with his back, giving logan a harsh glare as he walked right over to the bed where he placed y/n down carefully on it. her drunken self pouring the cover over her figure as she rolled over in bed. letting out a little muffled whimper as her head laid on the pillow.
the second scott having let go off y/n he immediately turned to logan scott not giving logan another chance to talk before he connected his fist with his jaw, logan been taken aback a little as he raised an eyebrow, scott looking right at him as logan pushed him back harshly.
âwhat the fuck did you do?â logan cursed out quickly, scott scoffing as he held back taking his glasses off because of the fact it was a party, not loganâs funeral even despite how much he wanted it to be.
âyou should ask yourself that, prick.â scott said harshly. loganâs eyebrows raising at his words as scott pushed himself past logan without another word.
logan immediately grabbing scottâs arm harshly, his claws aching to come out as he met his gaze.
âwhat do you mean by that?â logan said quickly, his eyes locked onto scottâs as so many questions flowed his brain. his thoughts enlaced with y/n and the worry he had for the girl as scott harshly brung his hand back to his side after shaking loganâs grip off â giving logan a stern look as he looked him up and down judgementally, âgod, you are so stupid. youâd think being born in the 19th century would make you slightly smarter then a twenty nine year old.â scott scoffed out lowly, his words only angering logan more as he shoved scott against the wall.
his claws extending as he pressed them close to his throat â his threat there as scott swallowed.
âtell me.â he said harshly as scott couldnât help a certain look cross his face. completely frustrated by logan, his heart aching for jean in this moment as he stared at what she had clearly picked over himself that enraging him yet also y/n and what she had just gone through herself. the heart ache something he could relate too and he wouldnât wish that on anyone. yet right now he would logan however.
âshe saw you and jean you idiot. meaning i did too. meaningâ fuck you.â scott said quickly as he clicked his visor getting the right aim, logan jumping back as scott lazered his chest. his beam going right through as a loud grunt escaped his lips as logan in immediate retaliation clawed scott in the side, scott pushing back the whimper threatening to leave his lips as logan as he got ready to take another shot at the man.
logan raising his eyebrow as the two stared eachother down, âiâll heal,â logan rolled out his words only angering scott worse as he went to raise his glasses again as logan roughly placed his hand on his chest to stop him, his claws retracted back in.
âi wish you wouldnât.â scott bit out harshly as logan scoffed at his words, keeping his anger limited as he rolled his eyes.
âjean only needed someone to talk tooââ
âyou mean fuck.â scott said out harshly, jean crossing loganâs mind as his jaw clenched his gaze darkening as he couldnât bring himself to shake his head. not that he was thinking about scottâs feelings â right now his mind pondering on another.
scott saw how logan couldnât even fight back with words â tutting as he pushed him back. loganâs hands falling to his side as the two didnât break eye contact.
âyou know weâre engaged.â scott spit out like venom, his words causing a look of surprise to wash over loganâs face as his mouth fell open, âwell we were.â he added out.
âyou wereâ what?â logan fumbled out, confusion written on his face as scott rolled his eyes at his reaction. not that he cared deep down, but it felt like he did right now.
âgreat.. she didnât tell you. like she didnât tell anyone,â he said lowly, ânot that it makes it any better what youâve done,â scott casted out as a few seconds finding passed as he tried to find the words which only come out anger filled, âsheâs a caniving cheating bitch.â scott cursed out, logan not bringing himself to react to the words scott ushered about jean as he looked at scott.
logan was about to say something to scott when the sound of y/nâs soft little snores filled the room which made the tension even higher as scott and logan glared at eachother.
âmaybe just think next time before you fuck someone elseâs girl, again.â scott managed out as he pushed past logan to leave the room.
âi donât think sheâs your girl.â logan called back out before he left as scottâs jaw clenched at his words as he opened the door.
ânot anymore. you can have her.â he said harshly as he paused as he knew he had to say something.
ââjust think about how y/n feels, because i know hurts.â scott spoke lowly as he left without another word clearly implying a certain fact.
logans heart skipped a beat at his words as the door shut behind scott, his mind feeling as if it was in a war as the tension built in the room immediately. the air feeling thick as he swallowed his own spit not bringing himself to call something back to him as his words couldnât even bring themselves to form right in his brain yet alone out loud.
his eyes dawned back onto the sleeping girl y/n laying there. looking so soft and innocent, completely sound asleep and his heart couldnât help twang a little as he bit down on the inside of his cheek â many bustling thoughts cursing his brain as he wished he had never thought of them.
his mind lingering on the thought of jean and what just occurred within him and scott as he came down from the pain that was inflicted on him his chest rising rapidly to a more normal flow as he healed. as he focused his gaze on y/n as he furrowed his eyebrows over what scott had said, trying to wrap his brain around it.
loganâs eyes dawning on y/n. guilt seeping through him as he felt his heart gain that aching feeling y/n had been riddled with since the day she first realised she was in love with the man as he sat on the foot of the bed. his mind feeling melted as he placed his hand on her own his big, gruff and rough feeling hand taking the soft touch of her hand into his own grip. her hand being half if not less of his size as he soothed her. her touch being another level of comfort he didnât recall experiencing since he was a young boy that feeling sending memories flooding through his brain he couldnât focus on now.
feeling all the emotions boiling up heâd been fighting to push down as he looked down at her asleep body. what was all of this? she had been distant, almost rude and very cold and scottâs words were making that why question he had on his mind for the past two weeks clearer.
the implication of scottâs words hung in his mind as he looked at her. him eventually bringing himself over to the spare place next to her in the bed not wanting to leave her alone for the night too worried about how drunk she was and if anything could happen in the night.. or anyone else drunkily walking in. but he couldnât help deep down in knowing that those were just excuses to stay within her presence. asleep or not.
carefully building a gap between the two of them as he laid down â no matter how strong the urge to hug her and comfort her was â as he let out a rough exhale as he closed his eyes.
only to open them three seconds later to look at her. his eyes not leaving her peacefully asleep body for the rest of the night.
#logan howlett x fem!reader#wolverine x reader#logan howlett x reader smut#logan howlett#james logan howlett#deadpool#angst#logan howlett x reader#deadpool and wolverine#logan howlett x you#x men movies#marvel xmen#x force#yearning hours#logan howlett imagine#deadpool 3#hugh jackman#marvel#marvel imagines#mcu#marvel mcu#scott summers#james marsden#x men
2K notes
¡
View notes
Text
l-o-v-e / aaron hotchner
part 2 to jealousy, jealousy!!!! word count: 2.1k pairing: aaron hotchner x f!bau!reader, shy!reader genre & cw: hotch being so in love!! jealousy plot, made-up case, and different use of cm character a/n: i got so much love for jealousy, jealousy it has been so surprising to me how much u guys loved it!! i really hope you enjoy this part 2 as we finally get some clarity to their feelings for each other!!
With your jaw slightly dropped, you manage to get out an âUh..â Then you clear your throat as if that will make actual words come out thenâ âUhh..âÂ
Now you didnât know how long you were staring at Hotch. Yet somehow you were aware that the silenceâ your silence was stretching out for too long. Like a fish out of water, you continue to move your mouth soundlessly.Â
And if you were actually underwater, you knew a series of air bubbles would come out in a line from your lips.Â
Deep inside, Hotch was getting a little worried. That maybe he came on a little too strong.Â
Was that too bold? Was that out of the blue? What if you think heâs joking? Or worse, what if you think heâs not taking you seriously?Â
On the outside, Hotch is trying very hard to maintain his calm and collected composure, not letting too much emotion seep through his expression. Making sure he doesnât look worried or too proud, too scared or too smug.Â
The small smile on his face is one that he hopes to convey what he means: that he seriously likes you and that he doesnât mean to embarrass you. But it is a smile that slowly fades the more he sees the panic growing in your eyes.Â
Loud clapping shakes you both out of your individual worries as Derek teasingly cheers for the development in your romanceâ hooting and whooping about how the boss man has finally made his move.Â
As if suddenly remembering that there are other people in the room, you both look around to check the other team membersâ faces.Â
To your surprise, Reid is blushing even more than you and Hotch are, and to absolutely no oneâs surprise, Rossi is looking straight at Hotch with a smug grin. Raising his hands theatrically slow to clap painfully slow for his best friend.Â
âMy man.â Derek proudly says still clapping, and if he was brave enough to risk losing a hand tonight, he would have stood up to pat his boss on the back.Â
Hotch shakes his head bashfully, cheeks turning increasingly red. He looks down at his shoes to hide his face a bit, mumbling a low, âShut up.âÂ
But Rossi being Rossi, was not gonna let the moment go, âI gotta say, Hotch, I didnât think youâd ever do itâŚor anything actually.âÂ
Looking at Hotch, you start to giggle. Heâs got his head facing the ceiling, acting playfully exasperated at his teamâs antics. No doubt already regretting his public expression a little bit.Â
But the laughter dies down into soft giggles, and he straightens a little to look at you. Catching your eye, you smile back at him softly, also hoping that heâd understand what youâre saying with that little smile. I like you too. Donât worry, you didnât embarrass me.Â
Hotchâs worries are instantly quieted by your smile. Like dust settling on the ocean floor, he feels at peace.Â
Your little staring moment though, is suddenly interrupted by his cell ringing. And the roomâs mood sombers knowing that there can only be one reason someone will call one of your cells late at nightâ a new body was just found.Â
â
Itâs 7:00am and the sun has risen brightly. Reid and Rossi went to the ME with the body to further examine whatâs been done. Meanwhile you, Morgan, Seaver and Hotch stay behind at the crime scene, knowing a fresh scene can tell you the most right now.
Youâve been staying close to Morgan as he theorizes the unsubâs movements. Following and coming up with theories of your own in terms of the order of the unsubâs entry and exit.Â
But as much as you are focused on the case, you look at Hotch and Seaver every now and then, who are interviewing witnesses and authorities on the side.Â
Hotch catches you looking at him and Seaver, just as Seaver holds on to his arm to fix the strap of her heel. You may have looked extra irritated but youâd blame it on the sun being on your face.Â
Looking back at Derek who had gotten quiet, you find him smiling at you teasingly. Already aware of what you were just looking atâ more like who. You roll your eyes at him, âShut up, chocolate.â
Derek shakes his head as he laughs, taking his sunglasses from where it hung his shirt and wears it on you.Â
âCalm down, Cyclops. You might just kill the two of them if youâre not careful.âÂ
You gasp at his audacity, watching his back as he walks away, not even giving you the chance to respond to his teasing.Â
Not wanting to stare at his back any longer, you turn around to pick up right where you left off. Only to have the fright of your life seeing Hotch right in front of you.Â
With a hand on your chest you catch your breath, âOh my god! How evenââ One second heâs more than 6 feet away from you, the next second heâs not even 4 inches from you.Â
Your heart beats even faster as Hotchâs hands reach up to your face to remove Derekâs sunglasses. âMorgan!â, he shouts and tosses Derek his glasses.Â
Derek catches it instinctively and looks to the both of you in confusion, but Hotch looks back at you and takes his own sunglasses off his face to wear it on you.Â
Seaver watches all of this unfold from behind Hotch, and you could see it annoyed her. But she puffs her chest and turns to the people she and Hotch were talking to, continuing the interviews they were conducting.Â
âÂ
Now during the case, obviously there wasnât really any time for you and Hotch to discuss the romance brewing between the two of you. Absolutely no time to indulge in personal matters at a time where other peopleâs lives depended on you.Â
But thatâs not to say that Hotch has not followed up his advances with more actions. Not at allâ the complete opposite actually.Â
He has only become increasingly affectionate and bolder with his actions. He seems to have given up on holding himself back around you. Heâs constantly sitting beside you, placing his hand on your lower back as you walk, then he stands behind you constantly towering over you whenever, wherever.Â
Heâs even given you his handkerchief multiple times so you could wipe your sweat, and when you guys ordered takeout for the night, he made sure to unpack yours for you and hand you your utensils, even standing to get you water from the pantry before he even touches his food.Â
Heâs been crazy sweet and even more protective than usual, you almost didnât need words to confirm how he feels about you⌠if it werenât for Seaver who has also gotten bolder with her advances towards Hotch. Then I mean, maybe a little reassurance would be nice.Â
It seems as if the recent development in yours and Hotchâs romance was something Seaver saw as a challenge- a hurdle she has to get over to win Hotch.Â
Annoying you even more, when she arrived at the precinct the next day wearing a revealing top and tight pencil skirt. She looked good, you had to admit.Â
Looking down at your own attire, with jeans, boots, and a plain shirt. You felt a little defeated. Obviously you werenât going to attract Hotch being this plain.Â
But you also wanted to be ready. The team was closing in on the unsub who has become more and more erratic, you could almost predict a chase and maybe even a tussle.Â
You were standing beside Reid, looking at the board trying to uncover a pattern in the unsubâs dump sites when you heard an agitating little voice say, âHotch, I think my top unbuttoned at the back. Could you get it for me?â
Tension instantly brews. The team, who has caught on to Seaverâs ploy early on, awaits your reaction. You could feel their gazes on your back, even from Reid who you could feel checking on you from the corner of his eye from where he stands to your right.
But you refuse to give in. You continue- more like pretend to- analyze the map on the board. Even tilting your head a little to sell that youâre really not paying attention to the two. However in all honesty, all your other senses are very much attuned to whateverâs happening behind you.Â
Rossi cleared his throat, making you check the roomâs reflection on the window on your left through the corner of your eye. And you watch as Seaver turns in her seat away from Hotch, anticipating him leaning close and putting his hands on her.Â
Now you thought that since Hotch had an idea about how Seaver makes you feel, that heâd keep his distance. You know, set those boundaries to appease you. But to your surprise, Hotch leans over the distance between his chair and hers, and reaches over to button her top.Â
You could feel your face heating up. You donât know if he simply didnât care, if he was oblivious, or if he did it on purpose. But now was not the time to act up and make a big deal out of something so trivial. You were all so close to catching the unsub, you poured your focus on the case instead.Â
But you need a moment to yourself, maybe a little fresh air or even a pep talk in the bathroom mirror will do. Just as you were about to excuse yourself stepping back from the board, you hear Hotch close the file he was reading- before he was interrupted- loudly.Â
His stern voice soon follows, âJust a little advice, Agent Seaver: if youâre assigned to the field, dress like it. Then you wouldnât have to worry about buttons popping or heels snapping while youâre chasing an unsub or racing to save someoneâs life.âÂ
You couldnât stop yourself even if you wanted to. Their reflection on the window was blurry enough that you couldnât make out their facial expressions, so when you hear Hotchâs stern voice your head snaps to look at him in surprise, not expecting him to be annoyed at Seaver given that heâd just helped her.Â
You almost feel bad for Seaver whoâs turning red in embarrassment. Sheâd obviously put together an outfit for Hotch. You all knew she was an outstanding agent, so to jeopardise her performance for a manâs attention seemed weird even for her.Â
â
To your surprise, her advances towards Hotch did not stop even after his dig at her unprofessionalism.Â
As you were all boarding a jet well into the night, exhausted from the long case, you all noticed Seaver subtly rushing to sit first. Unsurprisingly, she chose the seat beside Hotchâs usual seat. Acting normally, she pulled out a blanket settling in her seat.Â
But Hotch, who has been behind you the whole time, was just shadowing your movements. The most exhausted out of all of you, he wasnât even thinking about where heâll sit. He was blindly following you like a puppy, with a hand on your waist as if to not get lost.Â
He was actually just waiting for you to sit somewhere, then heâd sit beside you. So you chose a couple-seat on the far end of the jet, away from Seaver. Neither of you have the energy to deal with her antics.Â
In a last attempt to get Hotch to her, Seaver calls out âHotch, I saved you your seat!â, even opening up her arms that are covered by the blanket as if to invite him to her warmth.Â
But Hotch only looks at her silently, blinking. Then in less than 10 seconds, Hotch takes your hand, intertwines it with his, kisses yours softly, and crosses his arms as he closes his eyes to sleep- leaving your hand somewhat trapped to his body.Â
Youâre surprised at the bluntness of his affection, considering most of your team members were looking at you after Seaver called him out.Â
Stealing a glance at Seaver, you catch her shoulders drop before she settles back into her seat, while Morgan mouths to you âTold you,â from across her.Â
Turning your head to look at Hotch, you can tell he isnât asleep yet though his eyes are closed. You squeeze the hand intertwined with yours, trying to get it out of his grip and crossed armsâ he opens his eyes to look at you and softly whines, âStoopp.â
âHey!â you whisper.Â
He breathes out a grumpy, âWhat?â to which you smile softly and say, âFine. I guess Iâm your girl.âÂ
here's my masterlist!
#aaron hotchner#aaron hotch hotchner#aaron hotchner fluff#aaron hotchner angst#aaron hotchner x you#aaron hotchner x reader#aaron hotchner x reader fluff#aaron hotchner x reader angst#aaron hotchner fanfiction#aaron hotchner imagine#aaron hotchner fanfic#aaron hotchner fic#hotch x reader#hotch x you#criminal minds#criminal minds x reader#criminal minds x you#criminal minds imagine#aaron hotchner x female reader
1K notes
¡
View notes
Note
aww i love how u write sylus! you write him so soft and domestic but still so *sylus* if that makes sense hahahsbakdnfb (â  â ââ âżâ ââ  â )â âĄ
if ur requests are open can i req one with sylus and a reader who start to slowly crave headpats from him? i feel like he would give the best headpats ngl,, ty in advanced if you do~
Head Pats
Sylus X Reader
Summary: You want head pats from Sylus, but you can't bring yourself to ask him out loud. Safe to say though, Sylus likes granting the desires of your heart.
Word Count: 2050
Note: This was NOT meant to be this long, but the more I wrote, the more I become obsessed with this idea. So yah, I hope you enjoy! Thank you for the adorable request!
Also, consensual aether core usage (by Sylus) (don't know how else to put that lol)
---
There are quite a few things you like about Sylus.
Of course heâs handsome. You would have to be blind to not see that. Admitting it is another thing though, because the manâs ego is already insufferable at times (and you definitely will never admit how attractive that is in and of itself). But every so often, you catch yourself staring at his face, the sharpness of his jaw, the perfect curve of his lips when he smirks, the mesmerizingly morbid color of his eyes. Heâs literally gorgeous.
You also love how he takes action. Even if that action is something you disagree with. Youâve come to terms with the different ways you function. Youâll always be tied to the law, the regulations drilled into you while at the Hunter Academy. Yet, whenever Sylus drags you into his schemes, you canât deny the way your heart races in exhilaration.Â
Not to mention, it also means he never stops pursuing you. Being in a relationship with him is like a dance, and all you have to do is follow. Sometimes itâs like youâre spinning so fast you canât focus on a single thing around you, but you know heâll never let you fall. And sometimes itâs slow, just the two of you pressed together, sharing the same breath, the same time.Â
Though heâs never opposed to you taking the lead for a little while.
You like his mind. His quick wit and sharp tongue. You like riding with him on his motorcycle in the dead of night, far outside the N109 Zone, where itâs easier to see the stars. You even like his god-awful singing voice.
But one of the things you secretly like the most, are his hands. Not in a sexual way, even. You just like how big they are, how, when you compare hands, he can curl the tips of his fingers over yours. The confidence they have when curled around a gun. His callouses from hours training in the gym and work. Their capability to take life when he needs to.
Yet, they make you feel undeniably safe. Comforted when they rub your back whenever you âforceâ him to cuddle with you. Cherished when he cups your jaw, his touch impossibly gentle despite their ability to cause so much violence.
Thereâs only one thing he hasnât done, and the more you think about it, the more you desperately want him to.
Head pats.
It started when you were watching a movie, and the male love interest patted his partnerâs head, all the while calling her cute and teasing her. It was like a curse. Your mind immediately conjured an image of the two of you in their place, and you wondered what it would be like to have Sylus gently pat your head while teasing you, and thatâs all it took to send you reeling.
At the time, Sylus had asked why you were suddenly so red, but youâd played it off as getting a little warm. Which worked, though he definitely gave you that look, the one that says he doesnât completely believe you. But you werenât going to out yourself like that!
Itâs ridiculous! Absolutely ridiculous! You almost feel like it would be less embarrassing if it were something inappropriate. This feels somehow weirder. Isnât it? Maybe itâs not. Maybe youâre just overthinking it allâŚNo, maybe the weird thing is just how fixated your mind is on it. And how it pops up every time youâre near him.
Like today.
You and Sylus are in his kitchen. Youâre sitting at the table, watching him as he idles around the counter, preparing dinner. The chef had a family emergency, leaving the two of you to prepare your own meal. Which you were helping with, until Sylus teased you about your knife skills and banned you from the kitchen.
Cutting vegetables is not as easy as cutting up a wanderer. Realistically, you were closer to cutting off the tips of your fingers instead.
So now youâre just watching. Sylus works, efficient and graceful, his brow furrowed ever so slightly in concentration. You cross your arms over the back of the chair, propping your chin on them as your eyes follow his deft movements. He really is good at everything. His hands move as if itâs second nature, handling the knife confidently, without an ounce of hesitation.
Theyâre always so sure. Unshakable. Just like him. If only-
âIf you keep staring at me like that, sweetie, I might have to consider changing occupations.â
You blink, realizing Sylus had caught you, his movements paused in favor of pinning you with an amused look. Heat creeps across your cheeks, turning you a brilliant shade of pink. The corner of his lips curl up.
It, of course, hadnât escaped him exactly where you were staring. Nor was it the first time he had noticed you staring intently at his hands this week. At first, Sylus thought it was just coincidence. You have the tendency to space out, especially when youâre tired. But then youâd blush adorably and snap your attention somewhere else with that pout on your lips, as if you were thinking about something specific. Something embarrassing.
And Sylus is curious. What could his little hunter be thinking about that could fluster her so badly? It wasnât like you to get embarrassed, especially with him. So he set his trap. And youâve wandered right into it.
âItâs almost as if you were thinking of something else,â he hums, waiting for just the right moment.
âI um, no, I just, I like looking at you,â you stumble over your words, sitting up straighter, though your face already feels warmer than the sun. Youâve definitely been caught. âYouâre my boyfriend, arenât you supposed to like it when I look at you?â
His eyes narrow, simmering with an intensity that makes you squirm. You try to hold it, try to keep your gaze steady, but itâs like staring into a fire. The heat is too much for you to take. So you give in, looking at your lap and twisting your fingers in an obvious sign of hesitation.
âHmm, your lies need work.â The knife makes a soft âclinkâ as he sets it against the counter. His footsteps are quiet as he walks around the island. You canât help the way your breath catches when his fingers curl tenderly under your chin, forcing you to look back up at him. Sylus raises a brow, amusement glinting in the depths of his eyes, âYouâll have to be more convincing if you want me to believe you, kitten.â
âIâm not- Iâm not lying,â you try again meekly, though you already know youâve lost the war.
Sylus looks at you for a hard minute and this time, you canât escape his intense gaze. Itâs like heâs trying to unravel you, to strip you down until youâre bare in front of him, so he can read every part of you. And he can. It doesnât take long for a flicker of recognition to cross his face, and you can feel your heart racing against your ribcage.
A devilish smirk curls his lips.
âYou desire something,â he murmurs, voice lilting with curiosity.
You hate how good he is at that. A pout captures your lips, and you wish you could just cover your face. Maybe then this whole conversation would disappear. But you canât, not with how intently heâs watching you. So you just keep pouting, staying quiet.
Sylus hums, leaning down a little, so his warm breath brushes your lips, âThereâs no need to act so embarrassed, kitten. I quite enjoy fulfilling your desires, especially when Iâm at the center of them.â
Oh, you wish you could smack and kiss him at the same time right now. How can one man be so insufferable and so absolutely perfect all at once? You wish you could just come out and say it, you know he wouldnât think anything of it, and then your morbid curiosity would be sated.
But thereâs something about the way he���s looking at you, the way your heart is racing, the way you canât. stop. thinking. about his stupid hands, that makes the words lock themselves behind your teeth.
âI just canâtâŚsay it,â you waver.
The air goes quiet for another moment. And then-
âI wonât force you.â Of course. Sylusâ expression softens a fraction, the teasing glint replaced by a serious line between his brows. Because while he enjoys pushing you, seeing how flustered you turn, heâs never one to take it too far. Not with you. âI suppose I can allow you to keep a few secrets, as youâve so generously allowed me to keep mine.â
You both know itâs a farce of an excuse. Sylus still has his secrets because heâs much better at keeping them. Heâs a mystery you donât think youâll ever be able to unravel. This is his way of giving you an easy out.Â
He wonât push this if you really donât want him to.
And thatâs why you want to tell him.
When he slowly starts to pull away, taking your continued silence as confirmation, you reach out, fingers curling around his wrist. Sylus stills. He looks down at your small hand before quirking a brow at you.
You take a deep breath, seizing back some courage, âI just don't want to say it out loud. But if, if you want to find out using other methods, thatâd be fine.â
Now both brows shoot up. Intrigue. You shift nervously, but keep your chin high, looking at him expectantly. Sylusâ lips flicker back into a smirk.
âWell, since youâve given me permissionâŚâ
You nod. Sylusâ gaze focuses back on you, not that it ever left, his expression settling back into something serious. His right eye starts to glow softly, and itâs all you can look at. This time itâs not so scary, not so unnerving, when you feel the haze creep across your mind. Maybe itâs gentler because youâre willing, or maybe because your relationship has changed so much, but you almost feel a warmth filling your senses, drawing the answers gently from the depth of your soul and telling him exactly what youâve been thinking about this past few weeks.
Surprise flickers across Sylusâ face. He stifles a genuine smile, the glow of his eye slowly dimming until they match again.
âAll of this, over wanting me to pat your head?â
His voice doesnât hold any judgment, not that you were truly expecting it to. Still, if you could blush darker, you probably would, despite the relief you feel at finally having it out there.
âI know, itâs silly,â you admit, biting the inside of your cheek, âI donât know why I couldnât just say it.â
Sylus shakes his head, âIâll admit, it wasnât what I wasâŚexpecting, but none of your desires are âsillyâ. Except perhaps your need for enough stuffies to cover our bed.â
âThey need a home,â you shoot back immediately, feeling more yourself again.
âRight, right.â Sylus hums. His fingers stroke absentmindedly along your cheek. âHow could I forget? Itâs out of the goodness in your heart that you spend all my money to bring them home.â
âThatâs right,â you huff, âWho better to give them a home than us?â
âOf course. I take it back.â You blink when his hand leaves your face, only to settle gently on your head. You glance up at him, eyes wide. A fuzzy warmth fills your chest when he tenderly fusses your hair, those vermillion eyes glowing with fondness. âI suppose every desire of yours is adorable. So next time-â He leans down, nose touching yours sweetly. â-donât be so embarrassed to share, sweetie.â
His hand smoothes over your hair one last time before he draws away to go finish dinner. You bite down on your lip, spinning around to collapse against the table, unable to stop the small sound of happiness that escapes you.
Sylusâ laughter fills the room, along with the sound of more cutting.
It seems he has another tool to use to his advantage for showing you his love. Heâll have to make good use of it, if the way you kick your feet through the entirety of dinner tells him anything.
---
This request hit waaaaaaay to close to home for me. Love me some head pats. And I COMPLETELY agree that Sylus would give the best head pats.
Thanks for reading!
#lads sylus x reader#love and deepspace#love and deepspace reader insert#reader insert#x reader#love and deepspace sylus#love and deepspace sylus x reader#sylus x you#sylus x reader#head pats#fluff
1K notes
¡
View notes
Note
omg ive been highly enjoying ur fics and hcs!!! i think u wrote their characters very spot on 𼺠the jail one got me thinking... can i request the lads boys reacting to the reader getting in trouble after punching someone. bc someone talked shit about the boys and wanted to defend their honor or smth lmfao ty!!! đ
omg anon lemme kiss u on the foreheadÂ
I almost did a backflip when I read this, I was so happy to write it. This one took a bit longer to write so I do apologize, but I was reeeeally on a mission to deliver some good plot here
Some are a bit longer (coughSyluscough) but I really hope you enjoy <3
Defending Their Honor
Pairings: Xavier x Reader | Zayne x Reader | Rafayel x Reader | Sylus x Reader
Word Count: 3.9k (oops)
Warnings: Fluff. Angst. Lore references. Reader throwing hands. FEELINGS. Soft Sylus. -Scottie is allergic to happiness.
Masterlist
Note: I got possessed when I wrote Sylus' and probably should have made him his own fic. I am not sorry. It is longer than the others. I am bashing my head against the keyboard. Please forgive me.
â âWhile Iâm honored, you didnât have to do that on my behalf,â
â ^ Giggling and kicking his feet on the inside though
â Heâd also return the favor with no hesitation if the situation was ever reversed
â ^ You will NOT diss his lady in his presence
â Yâall are def cuddling for the rest of the night as soon as you get home
Xavier really needed to learn to stop taking his eyes off of you when the two of you were out in public.Â
The two of you had gone on a fun little outing to Linkonâs version of a pop-up carnival. There were games, food vendors, live music, and tons of people. He knew how badly youâd wanted to go, so of course you nearly jumped right into his arms when he showed up at your apartment after lunch and told you to get ready.
So far, it had been good. The two of you had played a couple games, won some prizes, even took chances with a few questionable rides. You had walked around, hand in hand, enjoying each otherâs presence and making new memories together.
It had been seconds. Seconds. You were both, unsurprisingly, hungry after walking around for a few hours. Xavier, being the knight in shining armor that he is, had walked up to one of the nearby food vendors to grab a snack for the two of you, innocently leaving you near a blue park bench. When he finished, you had disappeared.Â
He stared at the now empty park bench, snacks in hand, completely baffled. He did a quick scan of the area, only to see a bunch of people he didnât know, and someone being escorted to the exit by two security officers.
But that person almost looked like they were wearing the same outfit as you.
Xavier squinted. Surely not, right?
He caught up quickly, nearly stumbling when his suspicions were confirmed. That was absolutely you being dragged to the front of the park.
He lagged behind quietly, saying nothing, but already accepting the fact that your fun carnival date was apparently over.Â
You were given a verbal warning and kicked out of the park, being told not to come back for the remainder of this yearâs visit. If you came back, it would be trespassing.
You were getting ready to text Xavier when you realized he was right in front of you, nibbling on some type of skewer heâd gotten from the vendor. âSoooâŚâ He began, eyeing you curiously.
âI may or may not have slapped someone,â
His eyes immediately widened, his mind running through every possible scenario.Â
âWhat happened? Did someone touch you?â He reached out and grabbed your wrist, eyes scanning every inch of exposed skin for injuries.Â
âNo! No, itâsâŚ.nothing like that,âÂ
His eyebrows furrowed. âThenâŚ.?â
Suddenly, you were a bit embarrassed. It had been so stupid. How was he even going to react to this?
When Xavier had left you by the bench, a man that looked to be around your age approached and asked for your number.
âI know you just saw me with someone.â
âSo?â
âNot interested,â
âWhy? Because of that loser? You could do better.â
That was it. That was the reason youâd backhanded the disrespect right out of that manâs bloodline.Â
Xavier wasâŚ.so many things. Incredibly kind, thoughtful, and just so deliciously him. You adored him the same way he adored you, and had him on a pedestal that no one could even close to touching. You could do better? Not possible. There was not a soul in this galaxy that was better than Xavier. At least, not to you.
Hearing someone speak lowly of him when you truthfully couldnât even articulate how incredible he was? Yeah, instant slap.Â
You kept your explanation short. âSome guy called you a loser,â You said, rubbing your arm sheepishly.Â
Xavier almost giggled.Â
âSoâŚ.you slapped him?âÂ
You pressed your lips into a thin line, the reality of how out-of-pocket the whole thing was finally setting in.
Surprisingly, Xavier laughed. It was soft, filled with fondness and mirth. He pulled you into a loving embrace, placing a soft kiss on the top of your forehead. He'd be lying to the both of you if he said he wouldn't do something similar.
âIâm honored,â He began, his voice muffled by your hair, âbut you donât have to slap people on my behalf,â
âIâll always defend you, whether youâre in the room or not,â You responded, your tone firm and completely serious.Â
Xavier stood there for a moment, arms wrapped around you still, feeling like the luckiest guy alive. The thought of you backhanding someone for calling him something as simple as a loser was almost hysterical, yet it filled him with a warmth he couldnât explain. You were really something else.Â
After a moment, he pulled back, interlacing his fingers with yours. âLetâs go. Thereâs plenty of time left for us to turn this night around,â
â
okay listen I love Zayne
â
but he's kinda emotionally constipated sometimes (at least on the OUTSIDE)
â
the logical side of him wants to scold you and tell you that this wasn't necessary
â
but the emotional side, the side that is harder for him to articulate, is lowkey flattered that you'd go that far to defend his name
Zayne slowly paced back and forth in the lobby of the cityâs police station, the only sounds in the room being the tap of his shoes on the linoleum floor and the ticking of a clock on the wall. He glanced toward the clock. It had been 20 minutes since heâd come to retrieve you, and he was growing impatient.Â
The two of you were in another city for an awards banquet. Youâd come along simply to support Zayne, your absolute favorite person in existence (who just so happened to be an incredible Doctor that was receiving multiple awards for his work).
Imagine Zayneâs surprise when the banquet ended and he couldnât find you anywhere. It was extremely out of character for you to disappear when it came to things like this, especially while you were in an unfamiliar place. This wasnât Linkon. You wouldnât have simply left without so much as a âcongratulationsâ, not to mention that Zayne had been your ride here.Â
By the third time your phone had gone to voicemail, Zayne was nervous. That was when he started asking around. Heâd pulled up a photo of you, showing it to various employees and asking if anyone had happened to see you leave.Â
It was a security guard that told him youâd been arrested.
He left immediately, having the directions already pulled up before he made it out to the car.Â
Now, he paced, an amalgamation of concern, confusion, and stress.Â
A buzzing sound emanated from somewhere down the hall, and Zayneâs head whipped toward the sound to see you being led out by an officer, still wearing the outfit that matched his tie color.Â
The red knuckles werenât easy to miss.Â
While he did still open the car door for you, he chose a tactical silence for the duration of the car ride. There wouldnât be a single word spoken until you were back in the hotel room. This was a calculated method by Zayne. He knew youâd be absolutely squirming by the time you guys made it back, and that was exactly what he wanted.Â
The door to your shared room clicked shut behind Zayne, whoâd entered behind you. He leaned against it, folding his arms over his chest. He raised an expectant eyebrow at you, his eye flitting between your flustered face and reddened knuckles on your dominant hand.Â
It was hard to take him seriously when he looked that handsome in a tux.
âIâŚmay have overreacted,â You finally said, your voice coming out timid.Â
âCan you go anywhere without picking a fight?â He responded, his tone exasperated.Â
You swallowed.Â
âI canâŚâ
Zayne took a steadying breath. He moved from the door and took a seat on the edge of the bed. âTell me what happened,â
You had been out looking at all of the posters on the wall, reading the lists of different accomplishments and awards printed under each attendee, waiting for the banquet to end. Zayne had already received his awards, but was still backstage and not allowed to leave. Some of the audience, including you, had stepped out of the auditorium throughout the banquet. You had originally just wanted some air. The auditorium had been stuffy, and the fancy outfit you had on was not helping.Â
While you were out admiring the different posters, you heard a woman making some pretty rude comments about the poster she and her friends were in front of. At first, you just scoffed. You couldnât imagine being so bitter. Was it so hard to be supportive of others, even if they werenât the one you came for?
And then, you realized which poster she was standing in front of.Â
Zayne.
Imagine this: You happen to be involved with an incredibly smart, talented, and stunning man that just so happens to be a Chief Cardiac Surgeon at only 27 years old. The same man that has made evolutionary discoveries and progress in treating cardiac abnormalities. The same man that you absolutely adored, and wanted nothing but the absolute best for. All of this is great, right? Now imagine hearing someone say something completely horrible about him right in front of you.
At first, the confrontation had started off as just a scolding. Youâd told the woman that it wasnât right to say horrible things about the attendees. They all did such incredible things that they were receiving awards for, after all. This was not the place for such behavior.Â
And then, she justâŚ.kept going.Â
Before long, youâd quickly ended the conversation with an abrupt bitch-slap. Security had already been approaching when your hand connected with her face. You werenât going to tell Zayne this, but youâd actually gotten tackled.Â
You gave Zayne the shortened version of the story, leaving out all of the gushing.Â
Initially, he was quiet again as he tried to process what youâd just told him.Â
Lady. Talking bad. Zayne. Slap.
For a moment, he couldnât understand why youâd even resort to that. But when he looked at you, looking at him with eyes full of love and respect, he softened a little. While he didnât necessarily agree with your methods, who was he to dictate how a person should react to any scenario?
He patted the spot next to him, still trying to form an appropriate response. You sat willingly, leaning into his side. He looped an arm around your waist.Â
You sat in silence for a few minutes longer before he finally spoke.Â
âThe logical part of me should scold you, (Y/N). That was a bit overboard,âÂ
You looked up at him. His words implied that the logical part of him wasnât the one that was winning whatever internal battle he had going on. âAnd what does the other part of you think?â
He sighed, pressing his forehead against yours. âTruthfully?â
You nodded, nearly melting at the sudden affection. His lips showed the faintest hint of a smile. âTruthfully, Iâm flattered,â
âyk how Raf blushes and pouts when you do the Heartbeat interaction??
â yeahhhh
â but also.....feelings
When Rafayel learned youâd been thrown out of his newest exhibition, he was initially pretty offended. He didnât even want to be there to begin with. You were the only reason heâd forced himself to come, though heâd never admit it out loud. He had an arsenal of complaints ready to fire off the second he met you outside, after he reasoned with security, of course.Â
It was Thomas who had weaved through the crowd, placed an urgent hand on Rafayelâs shoulder, and leaned close to speak for only the artistâs ears: âSecurity just dragged (Y/N) out of here. She hit someone,âÂ
The confrontation had luckily gone mostly unnoticed. It happened quick, and security had whisked you out. Youâd gone willingly, and the man youâd struck no longer felt like sticking around either.Â
Somewhere during the short walk from the back of the building to the front doors, your reason for lashing out had gotten lost in translation. Rafayel was under the impression that youâd thrown hands because someone had dissed his art.Â
That, however, was an unfortunate misunderstanding.Â
It wasnât his art that the man had described as âworthless.â It was Rafayel.Â
Rafayel had smooth-talked security into letting you come back inside, with the condition that you would not be a problem for the remainder of the night.Â
Rafayel had been flattered, but definitely thought youâd overreacted.Â
âNot everyone can say they have a bodyguard this protective over art,â He teased, casting an amused glance in your direction. âThink we can make it through the rest of today without another attack?âÂ
Youâd rolled your eyes, still a bit peeved. Who the hell comes to an exhibit specifically to dog the artist, anyway? âThatâs not even what happened,â You grumbled.Â
âPeople critique art all the tiiime. That doesnât mean they should get assaulted over it,âÂ
âItâs different,âÂ
âIâm just saying. Iâve never punched anyone at an art gallery. Maybe youâre taking the Bodyguard title too seriously,âÂ
âRafayel. You were the art,âÂ
Rafayel came to an abrupt stop, the air seemingly vanishing from his lungs. Heâd heard you. Heâd definitely heard you. His brain, however, was doing backflips, struggling to process your last sentence.Â
You were the art.Â
The gears clicked into place, his cheeks burning hotter and hotter with each passing second. In all honesty, he was conflicted. He was torn between the all-encompassing warmth, the feeling of being appreciated and thought so highly of that you would deck someone in the face purely for speaking ill on his name. The other half of him felt almost bitter.Â
You were that same silly girl with a bad memory. And yet, here you were, fighting someone off of instinct when they said something nasty about him.Â
You could do that, yet there was so much you couldnât remember.
He was in a war with his thoughts and emotions, and unbeknownst to you, you were once again the cause.Â
He finally collected himself, masking the emotional roller coaster heâd just been on with a chuckle. He patted the top of your head, settling on a teasing comment rather than risking opening the floodgates.Â
âYouâre so weird, Miss Bodyguard,âÂ
Rafayel would end up finding you in every lifetime, over and over again, no matter the cost. Heâd remember every promise, every touch, every stolen moment. Yet, in every single timeline, you always found a way to make his head spin and his heart do cartwheels in his chest.Â
This would forever stick out as one of those moments. Â
⥠Soft Sylus.
⥠Soft Sylus.
⥠SOFT SYLUS.
Sylus had invited you to tag along on yet another negotiation. Heâd claimed he just liked having you at his side, but he truthfully respected your input more than heâd admit out loud. Heâd often bring you along under the guise of keeping him company, but would subtly pay attention to your body language and facial expressions. If you werenât going to bite, neither was he.Â
After the first negotiation you attended, you as Sylusâ +1 became a much more frequent occurrence. As long as he was in the room, your safety was guaranteed. Not to mention how a lot of potential deals went off a little smoother when you were in the room to ease the tension.Â
Today, the two of you were headed to a hotel a few cities away to meet with a man named Michael. You didnât have many details about the deal, but you had the basics. If there was anything you needed to know, Sylus would tell you.Â
It had taken you exactly 6 seconds after entering the room to decide that you did not like Michael. There was just something about him that had already gotten on your nerves. The arrogance? The âup-to-no-goodâ vibe he absolutely reeked of? The way he looked at the two of you like you were nothing more than pests the moment you walked in?Â
While it was just you and Sylus on your side of the bargain, Michael had 6 armed guards scattered through the room, which added to your irritation. Michael was clearly a man that thrived off intimidation, yet was too cowardly to have an even playing field.Â
Sylus never lost his nonchalance. He strode in like he had nothing to lose, suave and unbothered. He kept a hand pressed lightly against the small of your back as he guided you to a seat, a silent reassurance that everything would be fine.
The meeting had began, but not without Sylus catching how your mood had soured considerably within the first 10 minutes.Â
The more Michael talked, the shadier the whole ordeal seemed. He was boasting about some modified protocore that was the âbest on the market,â and trying to goad Sylus into purchasing it.Â
Sylus wasnât dumb by any means. But Sylus was also a man that would humor someone for his own entertainment. âShow it to me,â He said, his tone even.
One of the guards gestured for Sylus to follow, and he immediately turned to you, waiting for you to come as well. Instead, you shook your head. You didnât want to risk being ambushed when you came back if both of you left. Sylus trusted your judgment, knowing that he would be gone for less than 5 minutes. With a quiet âBehave,â cast in your direction, he disappeared with the guard.Â
The second the door shut behind him, Michael turned to one of his guards and said something you probably werenât supposed to hear. âIâm going to walk that bastard like a dog, just watch.âÂ
Oh?Â
In hindsight, it would have been better to keep your mouth shut. All you had to do was give Sylus a signal when he returned, and he would call this off with no hesitation. Your opinion mattered, after all. He didnât just bring you to these meetings to serve as eye candy. Knowing this, you should have just brushed Michaelâs comment off. However, it had gotten under your skin in a way you couldnât shake off. The words were leaving your mouth before you could stop them.
âIâd like to see you try,âÂ
Michael, and all 5 of his remaining guards, immediately looked at you as if locking onto a target. The tension in the room intensified considerably.
Michael scoffed, looking at you as if you were a bug heâd stepped on. You glanced toward the door Sylus had stepped out of moments before, half expecting him to be standing there with an amused smirk on his face. He wasnât, though.
Michael was on his feet, taking slow steps toward the chair you were sitting in. Despite the shaking in your fingers, you stayed put. âYou must think so highly of him,â He drawled, zeroing in on you. âI didnât know a man like that could catch the attention of a pretty thing like you,â
You didnât know why, but your anger was rising with each passing second. The implication of his words was clear, but you wanted to hear him say it. It was obvious that he thought of himself higher than Sylus, and clearly didnât have many polite thoughts about him. You and Sylus werenât necessarily a⌠âthing,â per se. Not yet, anyway. So why did this piss you off so badly?
âA man like what?â You challenged, staring up at Michael. In your lap, your hands, that had been neatly folded, were slowly clenching into fists.
Michael's mouth twisted into a wolfish, arrogant grin. âIâd say he takes up more space than heâs worth. Cocky, foolish, insufferableââ
Your fist had connected with his jaw before he could get another word out, sending him stumbling backwards, clutching his jaw as he tried to regain his footing.Â
It would take you about a week to fully process how the next 15 seconds had gone.
At first, the silence was so intense that you could audibly hear the rapid beat of your own heart.
Then, guns were raised and pointed directly at you. 5 from the guards, all at separate angles, and one directly in front of you from Michael himself.Â
Next, gunfire. A lot of gunfire. Multiple shots ringing out from 6 different directions.Â
You werenât exactly sure when Sylus had entered, but he apparently had the timing of a God. Youâd been whisked out of harm's way, somehow completely uninjured. You realized later that he likely used his evol somewhere in the mix.
Once safely away from the hotel, Sylus turned to face you, lips set in a thin line but his expression otherwise neutral. He studied you for a long moment.Â
âThat went well,â He said, his tone lacking any amusement. âShould I not trust you enough to leave you unattended for two minutes?â
You folded your arms over your chest. You didnât trust the sound of your voice yet. You knew you owed him an explanation, but the adrenaline was still too high and you were still too angry to speak.
Sylus checked you for any injuries and then, to your surprise, grabbed your chin, tilting your head up to look at him. Â
âYou need to be more careful who you pick fights with,â He warned. His tone was firm, but not unkind. He knew you were more than capable of handling yourself. It was one of the things he appreciated about you. However, the fight today had left a bitter taste in his mouth. This was the first time he hadnât been in the room the entire time. It could have been a lot worse, and you werenât bulletproof. This was the first time heâd left you alone for more than 30 seconds, and it had ended with you in a shootout.Â
âMaybe he shouldnât have been talking shit about you the second you walked away,â You retorted, your voice coming out bitter. âRight in front of me. It was justâŚdisrespectful.â
Sylus, who had assumed Michael had started it on his own, was stunned. For the first time in a long time, he didnât have any quips or sarcastic comments to make. That was what had caused the fight? You, the same person that used to look at him with so much distrust and caution, had thrown yourself into a fight to defend his name while he wasnât in the room.Â
Sylus was silent for a moment, his eyes combing your face for any hint of deception. When your words finally sank in, he nearly melted on the spot. The adoration heâd already felt was intensified. The warmth he felt in his chest was almost too much, and he wasnât sure whether he should scold you or kiss you.Â
Instead, he gently tugged you against his chest, choosing to simply hold you for a moment. It felt like the only correct option. His chin rested against the top of your head, one arm looped around your back as the other cradled your head. He was absolutely flattered, and outrageously smitten.
Yeah, he had it bad.Â
âJust when I think I have you figured out, you go and do something else that surprises me,â He murmured fondly, rubbing small circles into your back. You were an endless mystery to him. But as he stood there, holding you against him, he knew heâd happily spend the rest of his life trying to figure you out.Â
Note: 1.4k words just for Sylus I am SO SORRY but I needed this man getting all soft with this prompt slkdhjsalkhdÂ
#love and deepspace#love and deepspace headcanons#love and deepspace rafayel#love and deepspace xavier#love and deepspace sylus#love and deepspace zayne#lnds rafayel#lnds xavier#lnds zayne#lnds sylus#lads sylus#lads rafayel#lads zayne#lads xavier#lads x reader#lnds x reader#xavier x reader#zayne x reader#rafayel x reader#sylus x reader#lads angst#lnds angst#lnds fluff#lads fluff#lads headcanons#lnds headcanons#scottiexmariee
864 notes
¡
View notes
Text
ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ăă
¤like what you seeă
¤â ・Ëă
¤âĄ ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤flustering them by staring for too long ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤wanderer, heizou, xiao, ayato, childe ! ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ ( p.s. amai never proofreads)
"anonymous order; ...can i have the prompt 'screw you and your cute face' with wanderer, heizou, xiao, ayato, and childe ? â message cut."
ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤i just love the idea of flustering these guys ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤thank you and hope u enjoy, xoxo âĄ
ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ď˝Ąďž âšă
¤wanderer !ă
¤
if you think the easiest way to fluster this man is by staring at him with that lovesick look in your eyes, then you're absolutely correct.
he could be minding his business and you'd take your place beside or in front of him, and after a few minutes he can just feel the way you stare at him. your eyes burn into his skin, but not in the way he'd grow uncomfortable under your gaze, instead, in the way he could feel his face heat up.
he would huff before looking up at you, about to nag you for staring, but he always finds his words locked in his throat when he locks eyes with you. archons, the way you look at him is always so hypnotizing, it makes him feel vulnerable in a way that he'll never admit he likes.
he tsks, "can't you go, i don't know even just a minute, without staring at me ?" he snaps his fingers in front of your face, causing you to hum and look away from him. no, no don't stop staring. i didn't tell you to stop. his eyebrows furrow.
you chuckled, "sorry sorry," you turn back to him, chin resting on your palm, "i can't help it when you're so handsome." and you just had to back that up with a grin. archons you were doing this on purpose !
as much as he tries to fight back the warmth in his chest and the shudder your voice sent through his body, the shaky breathe he let out betrayed him as he opted to look back to the textbook he was reviewing.
he stuttered, "w - whatever ! just stop staring so much." before burying his nose back into the textbook as you laughed at him. "i can try ~"
ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ď˝Ąďž âšă
¤shikanoin heizou !ă
¤
in your relationship, it's usually heizou doing the flustering. and he does a whole lot of that staring too, especially when you're busy and he happens to be bored out of his mind, but ironically enough it's his weakness too. especially like this . .
the two of you had a free afternoon ahead of you, and what better way to spend it than to wind down in a hot spring ? you stepped into the water first, beckoning heizou to join you.
he turned his back to you, rather shy to take off his shirt, and you happened to make him even shyer by whistling once he slipped his shirt off. he turned to you over his shoulder, a smirk on his shocked red face, only for you to return a cheeky grin as you leaned against the rocks of the spring.
he shook his head, choosing to retaliate by teasing further. "so, you like what you see ?" he turned to you, hands on his hips with confidence that you'll be the one turning red, only to watch your eyes look him up and down. "yeah, yeah i do." you hummed, closing your eyes, missing the way heizou's face burned up again.
he cleared his throat, now stepping into the spring and taking a seat beside you, trying his best to brush off your gaze on him. since when did you know how to look at him like that ? he leans back, relaxing in the warmth of the spring and closing his eyes.
"if i get to see this sight everytime i take you here, i might just buy this entire place for ourselves." you spoke, piquing heizou's attention as he opened his eyes to turn to you, and not even the heat of the spring could compare to the heat he felt on his face as he met your gaze.
he chuckled, embarrassed, "well, aren't you bold today ?" he tried to tease, scratching the back of his neck. "why, don't you like it ?" you joked, cupping his chin to make him look at you, earning a shy smile from him. "i do, i do like it actually."
ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ď˝Ąďž âšă
¤alatus xiao !
being new to the concept of expressions and reactions to certain antics, xiao is easily flustered, though he is yet to realize it.
"is it a natural habit for you mortals to. . stare ?" he quizzed without looking at you, his eyes still closed as he savored the rich flavor of the almond tofu you had brought him. he opened one eye slowly and gazed at you you from the corner of it, perking up to the sound of you chuckling softly to yourself. "i suppose you can say that," you waved a hand in front of you.
"more like, it's natural for us to stare at something, or someone, we find interesting, puzzling, or alluring." xiao now fully turned to face you in curiosity, the bowl of half-eaten almond tofu set on the fencing of the balcony.
there was an emphasis on alluring, he mentally noted. was that intentional ?
"i see, so, which do i fall under ?" he asked, his gaze now fixated on you with an emotion you couldn't quite decipher. you tilted your head at him, "what ?" "do you. . stare at me because i'm interesting, puzzling, or â" "alluring." you smiled at the way amber eyes seemed to widen for just a split second before they were replaced with the back view of messy sacramento green locks as the male turned away from you.
"i stare at you because you're alluring, xiao. very alluring, even." you hummed, leaning your elbow against the fence of the balcony and resting your chin on your palm ever so casually, watching and noting the way his shoulders tensed then relaxed.
he might consider being thankful that your view was locked on his back, hence you couldn't see the humiliating red he could feel his face burst into. he tried to clear his throat, his hand grabbing the bowl of almond tofu and spooning the rest into his mouth to distract himself.
"every part of you is alluring, even how red your ears are." and at your words, one of his hands reflexively came up to cover his ear, causing you to laugh out loud as the adeptus turned to glare at you lightly.
ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ď˝Ąďž âšă
¤kamisato ayato !ă
¤
if this man thinks he's not easy to win over, he is funnily mistaken.
sure he's the smoother one with words, he knows all the right words and habits to adapt to make you swoon. but other than that, he's more vulnerable to your simple antics as he lets off.
"ayato," the way you'd say his name and drag on the last syllable, as if cooing at him, how he loves it. "ayato," the way your touch would linger on him even at the lightest taps, something so simple could tug his lips upward into a grin. "ayato !" a soft hit to the back of his head caused him to turn to you, finally.
"ah - good afternoon, darling." "i called your name three times ?" "ye. . yes, pardon me. i thought i was lost in my imagination again." he admitted as he took your hand in his and kissed your knuckles gently.
you hummed, "and what was so engrossing about your imaginations this time ?" you questioned, taking a seat next to him while his hand rested on your waist, now leaning his head against yours. "you, i was just thinking about you." he hums, "you smell sweet."
and a few minutes of comfortable silence followed after, enveloping the two of you in a rare calming atmosphere, ayato's head was now laid in your lap as you stroked his hair softly. ayato then started to feel your gaze on him, by how familiar it was. he smiled, looking up at you.
"staring much ?" he teased, sharing laughter with you as you playfully messed with his bangs. "i can't help it, you're very pretty like this."
"only like this ?" ... "stop staring at me, darling, answer my question." ... "please ?"
ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ď˝Ąďž âšă
¤childe !
"childe."
now, you wholeheartedly think your boyfriend's eyes are pretty, regardless of how lifeless they are whenever he's not gazing at you like this.
"tartaglia."
but, at this moment, you can't help but find them a little bit irking. just a little bit. just a tad.
"ajax."
it's the third call of his name, yet he's still sitting there, chin on his palm and everything, with that smug smile on his face ! while you're here, trying to cook a full course meal, he's sitting there staring at you like you're the food.
but in his defense, is there a law against admiring your lover ? there better not be ! he's done nothing but sit there innocently, just drinking in your pretty face, because if he can't do it no one else can !
it's when you softly pinch his sideânot enough to hurt, but enough to make him snap out of his dazeâthat he finally raises his hands up in surrender. "what, i can't ogle at my own darling lover anymore ?" he makes a show of jutting his bottom lip out in a pout, but you just huffed at his antics. "you can, if you would actually help me cook." "help as in ?" "cut some carrots maybe." "but i can't stare at you intently if i'm cutting something." "maybe that's the point."
ah, how you wound him.. kidding, a day without your attitude is a day incomplete for him. he fakes a sigh before standing up from his chair. he grabs a chopping board, a knife, and a few carrots, then gets to work.
it's a few minutes later that he feels your eyes on him, so from over his shoulder he turns to see you, in your seat with your cheek propped up against your fist, smiling at him. he grins, "now you're staring at me." "what, i can't ogle at my own boyfriend anymore ?"
he raises an eyebrow at the way you turned his words back onto him, but he laughs nonetheless before shaking his head and going back to work, assuming you would too.
you did not go back to work. he could still feel your eyes burning into his back. and he would never, everâhe would, out of the blue just to fluster you one dayâadmit that it was starting to shake his focus. his cuts were starting to get uneven as a result.
"are you going to keep staring at me ?" "is there a law against me admiring my handsome boyfriend ?"
alright, you win. just this once.
ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ÂŠ amaiaqt, 2023 ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤ă
¤do not plagiarize !
#genshin impact x reader#genshin x reader#genshin impact#wanderer x reader#scaramouche x reader#shikanoin heizou x reader#heizou x reader#xiao alatus x reader#xiao x reader#kamisato ayato x reader#childe x reader#tartaglia x reader#ę°ă
¤delulu publishing houseă
¤ęą#âĄđ
ź ŕź ×
: babe wake up amai posted ďź#amaiaqt#dessert darling event !
2K notes
¡
View notes